A Grammar of The Arabic Language (1874)
A Grammar of The Arabic Language (1874)
A Grammar of The Arabic Language (1874)
^*
T C^ P
a ALIENS
-.
CATALO&I
.m.
JL'^
Ikhwanu-s-Safa
he Lowei
Sak
Ait' Laiii
in
Hindi
-ZiuOai)
Oriental Penmajiship.
^rPe
I)ici
...ionary,
Pers-
ar-i-Solieli.
.-i-Mushin
CJa-Oa^IjU^
OM^
y cJU
'/^^^
^N
/^^t^<^.2^^ )
I?
GRAMMAR
OF THE
AKABIC LAITGUAGB.
BY
E. H.
FELLOW OP
ST.
PALMER,
M.A.,
JOHN'S COLLEGR, AND LORD ALMONEE'S nEADP.Il AND PHOFESSOR OF AUABIC IN TilE V:<IVEKSITY OF CAMBRIDCiB,
LONDOIST;
Wm. n. ALLEN &
CO., 13,
WATERLOO PLACE,
S.W.
1874.
WM.
H. AlLEir
&
CO.,
TO THE
HOIs^OUEABLE
GERALD WELLESLEY,
DEAN OP
AlTD
ST.
M.A.,
THIS WORK
IS
:r-,r;ir'
PEEFACE.
I
HAVE endeavoured
in the present
work
to furnish the
by the native
grammarianSj believing
At
make such
alterations
the
order
appeared to
me
the
memory
of
book.
etc.,
The Tables
and
tabulated,
so
as
to
exhibit
is
by means of
In
all
previous
and
literature
VI
PREFACE.
voured to supply in
will, I believe,
tlie
section
be found
for a
The
basis of this
grammar
^L^i ^U^
c^l:;^
c-JlUl <.L^
Beyrout, 1854;
L^V^'i] LiJ J^^^
Sheikh
edition, Beyrout,
1866;
and
for the Prosody,
\iL:L
'ij^\J\
Jj:
el
Sj^lill
(^.-..t!l
c-^k^ a
commentary hj Mo-
hammed
Makhzumi on
MS.
the
poem
of
Dhiya ed
din el Khazraji (a
Cambridge)
^J>jy^\
J-c
^_^
yLvll Lus'*
;
c_jIj:J'
by Dr.
C.
Yandyck,
Beyrout, 1857
and
el Yazji.
yUl
Dr.
ILiD L^h^
by Sheikh Kassyf
to
In conclusion, I have
express
of
my
gratitude to
W.
Wright,
Professor
Arabic at
Cambridge,
not only for carefully revising the proofs, but for kindly giving
me many me
and
to the
Eev. C. Taylor, of
also aided
the
proofs.
E.
Br. John's College,
1st JtiHiiidi/,
n.
PALMEK,
Cambridge
1871.
TABLE OF CONTEIfTS.
PAET I.ACCIDENCE.
SECTION
The Alphabet
Numerical Value of the Letters
Orthographical Signs
.
L OETHOGEAPHT.
PAGB
'
6
6
Vowels
Tenwiu
Hemzeh
Meddah
The Vowels
Jezmeh
Teshdi'd
........
or Sukiin
....
....,
9
9 10
11
,
.
as Signs of Inflexion
11
,.,..
13
The Pause
Anomalies in Writing
14
15
Examples
.......
..
16
19
20 23
Vlll
a:ABLE OF CONTENTS*
The Verb
Different
24
Kinds of Verbs
24
25 26 26
.
Tenses of Verbs
The
Preterite
ThoAorist
27
27
29
30
The Noun
of Action
,....'.......
.
,
31
Derived Conjugations
32 33
Root)
33
Forms
to the
First
33
34 35
Letters)
.
-.
Two
35
,J^
35
36
6th Conjugation, Jx-uj* 7th Conjugation, tj^dj] 8th Conjugation, JjtJ]. 9th Conjugation, J^l,
37
. ,
37 37
38 38 38
11th Conjugation,
Jli
*
39 39
39 39
The
Preterite
.
39
41
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
IX
PAGE
The N"oun
of Action
42 43 41
Active
Passive
u
Quadriliteral Yerbs
44
46
Noun
Noun
Agent
of Unity of Species
46
46
(3)
..."
of Action formed with of
46 47
(5)
(6) (7)
Nouns
Mim
47 48
50
51
The Noun
Noun
Noun
(8)
(9)
Noun Noun
........
Agent
51 51
(10) (11)
The Noun
....
52
53
Note on the
56 58 59
59
...,*.,
. .
,......
.
Doubled Verbs
Derived Conjugations of the Doubled Verb
Preterite of the Doubled
i
59
Verb
60
^
CI
62
62
Hemzated Verbs
1.
2.
for the
Medial Eadical
Hemzeh
Hemzeh
62 63
63
G4 65
65
X
III. Assimilated Verbs
1. Initial
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
PAOK
.
66 67 68 68
69 70
71
2. Initial
......
....
JxJj^
71
72
Jue
72
72
^)
. .
73 73
),
Measure
Jjtij
Jxs
74
.
74 74
....
.
.
.
74 75 75
77
.....
J^
77
78 78
Moods
........
Subjunctive
Mood
etc.)
79 79
79 79
)
Apocopated (Jussive,
1st Energetic
2nd Energetic
Imperative of the Defective Verb (Final
Preterite of the Defective
....
Jwtjo J.%i
80
Verb (Final
^i),
Measure
80
80
^)
Moods
J^, Jaj
Subjunctive
Mood
81
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
XI
PAGE
Apocopated
1st Enero;etic 'O^
81
81
2nd Energetic
Imperative of the Defective Yerb (Final ^5), Measure J.;uj J,o
Preterite of the Defective
82
82
82 83 83 83
Yerb (Final
3),
Measure
J.<ti)
^<^
Moods
of the Defective
Yerb (Final J )
Subjunctive
Apocopated (Jussive,
1st Energetic
etc.)
*,
.
.
83
83
2nd Energetic
Imperative of the Defective Yerb (Final ^), Measure J,.^^ Ji^J
84
84 84
Initial
and Final j or
o
j_>
. .
84
85
,
.
2.
Medial
and Final j or
86
87
as Strong
Yerbs
88
89
The Noun
Primitive Nouns
^
89
90
91
The Genders
Nouns
...
93
Common Gender
Note on the Termination
Declension of Nouns
S"
96
97
97
97
98
The
Cases of
....
;
99
100 103
. .
.
Nouns
of
The Numbers
Nouns
103
Xii
TABLE OF CO^'TENTS.
PAOB
.,
104 105
106
108
110
proken Plurals
Plural of Paucity
110
Ill
Forms
of
Broken Plurals
Ill
Plural of Quadi-iliterals
Plurals of.Quinqueliterals
112 112
112 113
...
Verbal
114
121
2. 3.
common
Nouns
4.
5. 6.
122
....
.
134
139
7.
View
of the Formation of
Broken Plurals
Plurals of Plurals
Irregular Plurals
139
,.....>^*
Nouns
. .
.
Weak
Letter
....
.
142
Formation of Nouns
144
144
147 148
151 151
Noun
of Relation
Abstract
Noun
TABLE OF CONTEXTS.
Xlll
PAGB
Changes in Towels,
etc.,
152 153
154
154
156 157
Demonstrative Pronouns
Interrogative Pronouns
The Numerals
158 158
IGO
163
165 165
Prepositions
Conjunctions
165
Adverbs
Interjections
166
167
Imitative Sounds
168
PAET
II. SYIS^TAX.
169 169
.
The
Preterite
,
II.
The Aorist
of Verbs
171
,
.
171 171
'.
Indicative
Mood
in the Aorist
171
171
The Apocopation
Particles
of the Final
Vowel
of the Aorist
....
. .
173
174 176
177
The Imperative
Xl\
TABLE OF CONTENTS,
The Cases
of
Nouns
177
178 178
180
The Subject
of a Passive
Yerb
184
188
The Object
of a Yerb
....
4.
5.
State or Condition
or
192
The Genitive
Prepositions
Dependent Case
...........
,
195
195
...,..,
.
.
197
198
TheYocative
Apocopation of the
last Syllable of the
199
Yocative
.
.
200
201
Nouns Nouns
........ ......>.<.
in Construction
201
201
Of
the Second of
Two Nouns
in Construction
....
.
.
202 204
206
Two Nouns
in Construction
The Gender
of an Adjective Qualifying
Two Nouns
,
,
.
in
.
Construction
Separation of
207
207 208
Two Nouns
in Construction
,...
The Noun
The Numerals
....
Numbered
Agreement
in
213 215
The Use
......
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
XV
PAGE
216
217
Names
,
.
219
. .
219
219
221
,....
Names
,
like Verbs
222
222
of the Infinitive or
Noun
of Action as a Verb
of the Agent,
Intensive Agent,
.
and
Passive
Participle, as a
Verb
225
,
The Noun
of Superiority
226
231
234 235
238 239
240
241
241
Abstract Verbs
242
2.
3.
Approximate Verbs
Verbs Denoting a Mental Process
.
244 246
247
248
4.
5.
250 250
Use
o{
^\
ij\
or ^j]
may
be used
...
^t,
1
251
in the Particles
^\ and
252
XVI
TABLE OE CONTENTS.
PAGE
6.
Negative Participles
253
.,
The Absolute
Eelative Sentences
IS'egative
254
256
.
Eelatives or Conjunctives
256
258
Other Conjunctives
259
to the
Antecedent
....
260
260
262
Xoun
'...
263
On
Certain Involved
Forms
. .
of Expression
264
265
Exception.
1.
![
266
i_5j^
2.^i. and
3. lill,
266
li.1:^
iX,
and
267
267
Apposition
1.
Description
iN'ature of the Descriptive
.
268
269
Noun
....
270
271
Simple Apposition
Particles
....
.
272
273
3.
Corroboration
4. 5.
Apposition of Substitution
276 276
277
Explanatory Apposition
Admiration
............ .<.......,
WOIIDS.
Particles
279
Certain Adverbs of
Pleonastic Particles
280
283
..*.<....,.<.
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
XVll
PAGB
Indeclinable
1.
Words
Expressions
Compound
tl-'Ul:^
283 984
285
2.
3.
Metonyma
286
Syntax
Summary
287
PAET
Nomenclature
III.PEOSODY.
292
293
*
.^
294
295
The
Circles
TheEirst
Circle iiUi:'^^
yj J
295
Diagram of the
Eirst Circle
297
297
298
298
299
The Second
Diagram
Circle,
(ai^^
vJ^
The Third
L^L^UyJ J
Circle
The Fourth
Circle,
<U^i.2U"Jjl J
Circle
299 300
The Fifth
Circle,
jii^f ^JjMj
300
301
^^^
Diagram
Scansion
302
(_jl^Jji Deviation
{a) <S,Ai^TL_jU-j!ii
(J)
302
Simple Deviation
Deviation
302
^^3ulTijU-pi Compound
....
"
304
2,
iLii Defect
304
XVlll
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
PAOB
307
^fi
307
308 308 309 309
Fourth Foot,
Fifth Foot,
^\^
^ 9
^li
J^li^^
310
311
Seventh Foot,
Eighth Foot,
Luif^*
312
313
The Metres
Tables Exhibiting the Different Metres
1.
314
314
315
Jj^f
2.
'"
318 319
3.
322
323
'L.^M
4.
326 327
330
331
5.
J^l(jTj:^ The
Perfect Metre
Examples of J^lill
6.
-jjfj:^ The
Trilling Metre
\
334
335
Examples of ^jA
7.
338
339
8.
J^^TpC
342
343
Examples of
9.
^^tj^
346
.
. .
Examples of ^.j^\
347
TAELE OF CONTENTS.
XIX
PAOB
10.
^^~
_^I^TJ^ y
350
351
Examples of _
11.
...... .'
354
355 358
u-g_g'^i
12.
^lj2fjl^ The
Doubtful Metre
Example
13.
(
of Cjl,J^^
358
360
.
*iii^Tj:^ The
of
Curtailed Metre
Example
14.
cl-Jju^t
., ."....
.
360
tj^c^l
Examples
,csr
362
363
of ^Jl^^u^'^X
15.
<
^J\k:^\ jsT
366
'
Examples of ijj\ic^\
367
16.
t:J ,U":>2T
^
->
V.^ The
Consecutive Metre
*
i
370
Examples
of
C^j\S:^\
,.,,..
371
Rhyme
,.<,......
;
373 373
.<.>........
.
Vowels of the
i_^^- Faulty
jc^ll
^'j!;-*
Xlilj
374
o75
375
Rhyme
............
............
Grammar
<*
Poetical Licence
APPEXDIX.
Glossary of Technical Terms used in Arabic
.
377
'i05
Index
'
Page
^^j
read
^\^
16,
17,
fata
fatan.
which case
it
has
<
j>.
^ ^
it
to fall prostrate,"
.
J}j^'
jiPage 45,
to rush
jJ^.
add
is
is
formed
by a
as^^i^
to gargle," ^_^y^^
"to whisper."
Foreign nouns are also often employed in the formaa girdle," ji:^^'
to be girt."
The culJLs^,
ostensibly
or
derived quadriliterals,
in
the text,
are derived
from
triliteral roots.
Some
S^
God
to
j^
(Hebrew
'^^&>).
common
use, as
i"j ^
qSa^^
to say
AiJ^
^^^^
praise be to
'*
;
J^^ ^
^1
" there
is
*.uj
in the
name
of God."
Page
There
is
XXU
therefore
called
J.rUJl
*~)Ij
<^-wi!U^l
tiLJl
a3
^y
iJ^
"to be joyful,"
to drink,"
^y
.
"joyful." a drunkard."
t_-J^
Page
Adding
to this
-^
S^
Page 53,
,jx3
to the list of
Nouns
of Excess add :
as
Jjj-
immense."
"thin."
hard."
J^
JUi
as
yis>-
sweet."
Jjti
J5j
^Is.--'
"brave."
merciful."
Jxi
L_-^
^
juj
(^l/.5>-j
The form
J^,
when
is
frequently conr^f^^)
tracted, as c:-^r*
C'-^.-',^'*)
dead,"
l::-w*
j^
good,"
j^
-:>- is
hemzeh, read
Page
words
5.
J^ when
:
it
derived
it is
Page 95,
line 3, for
read
^y>j
and ^,fj'
1, to
tive verbs).
>j
>
">
>>
>>
>>
>>
>>
12,
jjcls
SXIU
Page
tain the
J\
add
Feminine nouns of
as J^l:^^
it
this
meaning of d-M j,
\^\
= jj^>- lUi J
cow
so in Kor.
etc."
ii.,
63,
(j^jli ^ iJo_
Verily
is
neither aged,
where
Page 99,
line
2,
for ^'j b
read >\j\b].
}>
!-'>
>>
j*^
>>
(-'
^^ "
146,
19,
"for^"
"for^."
"for ijj-"
20,
18,
"for J;i"
after orJl
father,'
"add
304,
1,
ii
.sT
Page 332,
line
9,
/or ^^)xU:;,
rea^? jJ-^li::^.
>>
12 '-'J
2,
j>
,,
333,
,,
^jxiiwi*
,,
^^xA..
S
>>
^9
i
>>
c,
344, 348,
3,
jy^^^
(j:^b
j\^\i^ ^ ^
^i"^**
ci^li.
11,
365,
3,
jlfJb.
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
PART
SECTI0:N'
I.-ACCIDEi^CE.
L OETHOGEAPnY.
THE ALPHABET.
left.
(1).
The Arabs
ARAEIC GRAMMAR.
ARABIC LKTTEKS.
THE ALPEABET.
c c
,
fijialj
slightly,
becominc; k and
(J/,
i_
when
,
initial
and C and
re-
spectively.
j^
t_f
when
initial
^^
-.
re-
spectively.
j,
when
when
^
initial
re-
spectively.
^,
initial,
^,.
final
a.;
and when
medial
or
DETACHED.
ARAEIC GRAMMAR.
used as mimerals
Hebrew
or Phenician alphabet,
and confol-
lowing table
HKURKW.
CHRONOGEAMS.
The
thus
letters in their
series of
letters
as numerals
is
confined to
is
to say,
letters
the
sum
more
of the
may be
as
required.
In order
to
be
still
easily
retained in the
verse,
memory
woven
into
in the following
Abdii'l
14-Ziz,
fortune smiles
!
tlio
On
the day of his accession the world holds festival in his liononr,
ou
it
The sum
of the
in the sentence
^fJ\ J^y^
Mohammedan
Christian era.
The Arabs
6
in precisely the
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
i.e.
from
left
1234567890
\
e
e.g.
lAvr 1872.
OETHOGEAPHICAL
VOWELS.
(3).
SIGN'S.
signs are
The vowels
are
re/,
fethah, spectively
in ft.
in fat ;
as
-^
while feth,
a, i, u.
by the hardness
The
TENWIN.
(4).
doubled, thus
pronounced respectively
un and
in.
called
%^^
tenwin, i.e.
and
dhammah
respectively.
The
vowels.
The
form
is still
ORTIIOGRAPniCAL SIGNS.
namely
father."
brother."
"mouth."
s
possessor."
Nominative
Genitive
Objective
y>\ abli,
^\
i^^
\s>~\
ahliu,
fu
^J\
alt,
alch'i,
ijtf'h
Is
lJ'^
^^'^-
ul aha,
akhd,
fu,
dhd.
When
the word
is
indefinite,
reference to any other word, a certain stress will be laid on the vowel
which
when
when
it is
it
either in construction
or defined
by the
article,
that
is,
is
mentioned only in
its
the stress
is laid
rather on the
word
is
itself,
This
we
mus,"
of a father,"
a father,"
musa Latinorum,"
falls
on the words
musa" and
futher,"
a, m,
and
This
is
exactly
wnat happens
expressed in
writing thus:
t_->li:^
Icifdbv^,
"a
the dropping
of the tenwin in these cases being equivalent to the shortening of the long
vowel.
From
its
noun, and
It
is definite.
is also
that the regular plural forms are nothing more than a prolongation of
the terminations of the singular, as though the vowels were prolonged
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
imply an extension of the meaning: thus,
to
is
declined
MASCULINE.
Singular.
Plural.
^
i 9
i-
Nom.
Genitive
\j^y* fnumtnun.
o
S-
^^x^y*
i
mli7nin(ma
9
9
^^y
muminm,
"
^ .
'%9 % ^
FEMININE.
IN'om.
Ai^y* muminoXxxn.
LU\:>^y muminkivm.
\
>
Genitive
Objective
^yy*
^
'
inuminaiiu.
't?
CL?\L.^ jwMmwatin.
i^^y mumm&tan.
No
distinction appears to
made
in Arabic
superscribed
employs
^.
When
last
come
accentuation, fall
upon the
would remain
shortened.
Arabic
The process actually takes place in modern the word -s^-J'H* mafdtihu, for instance, is pro:
is
shortened by
u,
having
language,
is
in the
modern
From
vowels
^
i
^
t/.
correspond to the
weak
consonants or semi-vowels
In Arabic writing the long vowels are formed by a combination of the two
;
thus,
Ij
ha^ jj hu^
hi.
ORTHOGRAPHICAL
SIGNS.
HEMZEH
(C).
In endeavouring
to
consonant,
we make
this the
Arabs represent by
hemzeh
beginning of a word
, j1 mi^
^\
eV,
<2,
w, z;^ ^
and
ow in now) and
(7).
In the case of
thus
^
the
first
<^,
and
is
called
meddah, "prolongation."
as in the
The long is sometimes pronounced like our a in face, word JJ^iW pronounced ennes ; this is called
\ ,
Imaleh^
i.e.
causing
it
sound of kcsrah),
The vowels
-^ or
thus,
\
of nouns,
e.g.
or
nominative or subjective.
genitive or dependent case.
or t^
in the
cases
it
work arc
to be pronounced as iu Italian.
10
(^^\::^
AEABIC GRAMMAR.
genitive or dependent,
ceding word,
bls^
ohjective,
And
in verts
jxh^
he does"
that he
(active).
Jjtw
j^l
may do"
(conditional).
From
this it
significations as action,
vowels themselves.
Some
philologists
origi-
nally monosyllabic.
primary
signification of the
The
fj.xi
an
action,
rr depending upon or
JEZMEH", OR StIKUN.
(9).
1.
ha.
2.
Two
In
c:-^ hit
mark
and
is
called
siikun, "rest,"
orjezmeh, "cutting
A letter without
a vowel
Note.
is
called quiescent.
cannot come together; such a combiinadmissible
:
bist is
In
always
named
ba";
<JL~^
Id-tdkcsrah,
OETHOGEAPmCAL
SIGXS.
TESHDID.
(10).
or siUlant letter,
itself is
assimilated with
and the
letter
JJ^I
doubled to compensate for the elision; thus we say ash-shcmsu, not al-shemsu. Like all other permuta-
which I
<Lw^^
They
^jj^'^ al-huriif
word
J^
lunar
of them.
The remainder
^;j^^
cd-lmriif al-Jcamari7jeJi,
teshdld, "strengthen-
(sCO 6).
at
The Arabs cannot utter two consonants together but to the beginning of a word without a vowel
;
el-
"smith" in an Arab's mouth would become ^^L^| ismith. The heinzet eUvasl is important, not only in an orthographical, but in a grammatical point of view,
and must
word
and
consonants together at
tlio
manner
cUvasl
just indicated,
is
and
employed.
be seen in
:
12
(1 j.
(2).
Ar.ABIC
GRAMMAR.
simple
triliteral
of
tlie
verb
ugations
(3).
VII X.
:
SO
jjJi
^.
(When
the
word
^\
occurs be-
daughter.
*-j)
ismun, a name.
istun, the anus.
'^
two ("numeral).
jM^:^^'
tthnatdni (feminine),
*-^i tmraun, a
.^1 iinraatun,
man.
a woman.
oaths.^
i"^
^^;^
aimnmm,
The
mark
thus,
tvaslah
' j1
is
placed over
tlie
uJ^Q
ihnu al-meliki.
sylhible
In y^\ and
lljj^
may
thus
^y^ :/*!?
*-j\j (*-f'i
'
^^
^
>
so^
J^^o
came
^ ^'^^ ^
o^^
ravca.
I
Vy^^^
^^1j
^^"^
''---^iL'
son
man."
' Passed by a
son
^*)j *^Mj
<J^y
'--tl/^
man
a man."
but rather an
be written
m these words,
...jI
wi
etc.
OETHOGRArHICAL
SIGNS.
13
Here
syllable,
it
Jo?-j
At
word
first
(3)
is
pro-
nounced
(1)
Wiili fethah
in the article
]}\
and in the
(j^t.
(2)
With dhammah
it is
of the form
liesrah.
Jjtl)
In
other cases
pronounced with
el-tvasl
comes
after a letter
which
^ "from," ^
;
^^,
^^ "me,"
"my" (affixed
of "doubled" verbs
that
of
which
wV-.
All those
last con-
The
words
jJ
"since," j^ "you," "your," '^ "them," "their" (affixed pronouns), l:ut "you," takes dhammah. After a iemv'm the
hemzet el-wasl
is
HEMZET
(12).
EL-KATA.'.
Hemzet
el-kafd^
duced by
it is
pronounced),
"I
act,"
where
it
denotes the
it is
first
aorist.
In such cases
The words
*Up
"I
14
alphabet," contain
signs.
AEABIC GRAMMAR.
all
The
learner
is
Hemzet
written T;
sentence,
el-tvasl^
it is
t , 1 u^ \
Hemzet el-katd
always written in
full 1.
When
the
-f-
dhammah
is
or
which serves
as its prop,
to the short
L:u^L>-
"I came."
When
it
is so
from the
letter of prolongation.
THE PAUSE.
(13).
The
final short
tion at the
end of a sentence
thus ^:^)\
J^}^ ^\
;
*-^
Bismi
I
,
HldJii
''rralnmi.
in the pause
as
iU^ ijLi'Xs^^
dhammah t^
becomes
Temvm
and
jjJj
kesrah and
aj
'l:>-
cij^, ^xq-
as IjjJ
<.::^f\jj
pronounced
nun^
ra'aitu Zeidd.
The
single emphatic
which
is
sometimes added
to the imperative
and
becomes
Ij
T; as
Jl idhrihd.
Sj
Words
<2 kill
of one letter
add
in the pause; as
rah and
for J ra
and j ku
ANOMALIES IN WRITING.
"Words like ^li, in
wliicli
15
^Uj
cL^'i^,
pronounced marartu
hi-Jcadh.
ANOMALIES IN WRITING.
(14). Arabic is
pronounced as
it is
written, except in
The
words
is
with the
first letter
^J^
j^l
and
^ when
followed by
U, become U^,
^,
Ujs.
^'^
becomes
1 j^l or
(2)
An
alif
is
(1)
After ivaw,
when
also
as
V r*
As
dharahii.
This
;
is
noun
as S:
\^ \j>
;
dhdrihu Zeidin,
as iJjj Zeiddn.
<(
(2)
"a
hundred,"
(3)
uld'i,
two hundred."
J
is
wmo
jJjl ula,
those
from
,as.
'Omar.
:
(4)
Alif
is
ar-Rahmdnu, "the merciful (God)," iX^L* ^^>-J^ angels," cul^^^-: samdwdtun, " licavcns," tliCj dhdlilca,
''
f'
'
-
'.
"
"that,"
(-!-C!_jl uldilca,
"those,"
liU
"three,"
^yij thaUthuna,
"thirty,"
Idkinna,
"but,"
'
16
Jt^j>j
AEABIC, GEAMMAE.
Ahraham," ^xa,^]^
IhrdMmu,
Ismail,
Ishmacl,"
i^-'l Ishdhi,
names (^Is
'Otimidn,
,^r*r^
Sulaimdnu,
^^f*J^
Nomdnu.
The Hornet
<Uj1 *<uJ
phrase
II
Jijj
;
be pronounced.
el-wasl is omitted
(1)
in the
name
of God."
j^i
when
it
occurs between
correlation exists;
as jj-Kc.
Zeidu'bnu Sdmrm,
If
e'Jw
with the
el-
second proper
name forms
as
r-^^^
tvasl is retained
Zeid
(is)
the son
of
Amr."
(2)
In the
article
jl when following
J
J
"to," as i^u-J'^
to the
man."
TT^ae^
.
(6)
((
.
is
^
t-^i
David ;"
(jwujj
heads."
end of words
he
is is
the vowel
as ^^Ji, yardhd,
pleased,"
^zi
fata,
^^^
maid,
when?"
jglj laid,
cer?',
tainly," ti'Jo
/(/a,
^\
ild,
until," ^L:^
upon."
s
(8)
wdw
is
pronounced as
alif in
^ ., i^;^>\
Urn
s
"
I \
haydtun,
life,"
i^J^
saldtun,
alms,"
when
when
(15.)
%hi
sa
zii
ri dha
du
khi
ha
ju
ihi
ya hu wa
ni
ma
lu
Tea
hi
fii
ghi
a dhu
ti
^ha
su
17
jl
^^
ri
b
dhd
_jJ
^^
M}.
bhd
^
ju
'd
^
ihi
b
td
y
la
u?l
^\
i
jl
dk
ai
au
md
lu
led
k'l
fii
ghj-
^(i
i'l
dhd
su
shi
sd
zu
yd
yu.
hit
wi
wai wd
ni
S^
mudh
js
sar
-Li
Jci.
ki
ka{
^j
ruh
^
haj
Ow"
tJ-^v^
ij:-^
c:-^
fut
c?
i_--J
kd
Unidk
had
o^x
mit
c>^
lit
tab
<
ox
u^.
ux
u*"^
das
v^
j'^
r^
jj
zur
saf
kam
lal
dur
i,
-^1
xo<*0
O-^
OXC-^
X-CJ "^O
tva'Udhi
fi ^l-haydti
dlaihi
fi U-liarhi
fi 'z-zamdni
linndsi
lil'haydti 'd-dunyd
xOx ^o-o
''
O X
Bi-al'i
man wadattuhufaftaraknd
decreed a meet-
(May) he
ed)
by
wadda
fa^ftaraknaliaiilanfalammaHtakaind
to
me was
Wc
were parted
met,
for a year,
and
when we
18
AEABIC GRAMMAR.
/cat?
lidd
An
God
dogmatically,
wa-mdkudd
And
said,
know
that
it is
so
by
flraX-rt!
's-shai'u
fa-kdla inna
Icaldm'i lasta
tafhamuhu
And
I said,
"l am
not Solomon,
,
Then
said he,
"Tou
do not undcr-
!"
stand
my
speech.''
This
may be
paraphrased as follows
I lately found,
A foolish
Said he,
Atheist,
whom
far
You're knocking at a closed-up door," said I, Said he, " You do not understand my speech." " I'm not King Solomon !" was my reply.
Alluding to the
Mohammedan
19
SECTION
II. ETYMOLOGY.
Every Avord
in Arabic
may be
referred to a sig-
The
letters (_J
and
c_j, c_;
and
^,
cJ and ^, cJ and
bv
side
same
root.
treats only of
of the root
e?^
is
modified.
Thus
in English
we add
the termination
to
taken as the
and the
allf
between the
first
and second
radical,
latter
thus
the
3j^
tliis
Avord
is
formed.
It
is,
in fact, a
mere formula,
20
in AlgeBra or
;
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
for as (a
h)
may
represent (2
3),
(4
+ 5),
any
otlier
triliteral root
J.^ in J^li
we may
substitute
any other
triliteral root
;
as
3^
where
i1j^}J>
katlun, "killing,"
Jj'^
"a
murderer."
and
re-
The
triliteral root
may
weak consonants
or
scmi-vowols
^ in
which case
These
and depend upon the principle above advocated that the three weak consonants ^ ^^ are respectively homogeneous
\
When
weak
To understand how a vowel can change one weak consonant into another analogous to itself, when we should
rather have thought that the consonant would be stronger
we must
root
we
and then
21
we
sliall
22
ARABIC GRAMMA R.
I have before suggested that the old Arabic had no
short vowels
on the
Jj
we
actually have
it.
conquer the j.
(.IJli
the long J being quiescent conquers, and the accent falling on it, it becomes ci-Sy but this is naturally shortened
;
two quiescent
When
to
it
a vowel and a
weak
letter
which
is
not analogous
The measure JUj^, from ^\t, "would be ^'^y*i and the measure
Jsxi^, from
jj, would be
^.
-^'^
but ^'ij'*
therefore
miwzumm and
^j>4;^*
to the ear,
and
and
(.t^v*
muktnun,
A permutation of
takes place;
is
other than
instance,
weak
as, for
when two
which
it
form
is
which
such a difficulty
is
likely to arise
Jv'cil iftadla
e.g.
''*?
we
should
ASSIMILATION.
23
this,
the latter
is
-^ \-^
letters
are suc-
ASSIMILATION.
(18).
is
One
by another, which
then doubled.
when
the same
letter is repeated
ju^
for jjc^
maddim
or
when two
letters of the
same
kind of assimilation
is
optional.
RemarJc it
The
it
principle involved
is
the operation of
change.
memory with
a long
list
of
7'iiles
for
Permutation and
24
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
of speech.
The parts of speech in Arabic are three : 1. The Verb. 2. The Noim (including the pronoun and adjective, and what we are accustomed to call the participle). 3. The Particle (including the preposition, adverb, conjunction,
and
interjection).
THE VEEB.
(20).
An
its fifteen
conjugations, its
active
etc.,
may
and passive voices, subjunctive and energetic moods, well seem a formidable thing for a beginner to
shall,
it
encounter.
We
which
zvcalc.
transitive
and
neuter,
and passive.
three letters
They are either simple or augmented. The simple verb cannot contain less than
or
more than
It
five.
one
may happen that in conjugating, all the letters but may disappear, so that a simple form may seem to
letter, as in
i^
ti,
L^l
Ui,
from
^]
atdj
"he came."
25
is
The
letters thus
employed
to
augment or conjugate
servile^
-O
P Pl --O
i^'s-
name
they answered,
{i.e.
safety
and ease)."
letters
It
may
also
occur as
We
or
first,
second,
and
c auiy
lam respectively.
passive
fifteen conjugations.
These
last,
by
action
is
con-
all
derived forms,
cl^
dharhim,
and
26
infinitive or gerund,
ARABIC GRAMMAE.
in Arabic.
Note. As
this
noun
of action
is
variable in form,
it
has
others are
all
This
is,
therefore, the
TENSES OF VERES.
*
THE PEETEKITE.
is
(22).
of the form
The
The
Fem.
form 3*i
TLUllAL.
Masc,
SINGULAR.
Fem.
Masc.
l::-^^
Jlxj
3rd person.
twiixj
l::-^^
L::->Ui
2nd
1st
L::-Jjti
\Note.
The
^
,
o
,
terminations
c:^
l::-^
C--
etc.,
are in reality-
Again,
This paradigm applies equally to the forms Jjti, Juii, and to the passive
Ui,
^.jL-^M
Ui
<
''l
TIIE TENSES
27
be implied.
and prefixes by
THE AOEIST.
(23).
The
formed as
follows
PLURAL.
28
ARABIC GRAMMAE.
by a long
vowel, thus:
PLURAL.
Fern.
DUAL.
Fern.
SINGULAR.
Fem.
Masc.
Masc.
9 9i^y
Maso.
^C cox
f^xs3
JjtaJ
Srd person.
iUii-
L^
.Jjtij
J.XSJ
2nd
1st
>
2.
It
gether
may be apocopated, i.e. lose its last vowel altowhen preceded by certain particles, or used as an
be declined
DUAL.
Fem.
Masc.
P P'^^
SrVQULAR.
Fem.
J-xiJ
Maso.
^O
.'O^
9 9
o^
Ldi-
L5
^^'
Jotii"
2nd
1st
Wl
To the
conditional form of the aorist a nun
|t,",
either
single or doubled
and preceded hj
:
fetJiahj is
some-
it is
chiefly used
when
employed as an imperative.
It is then de-
clined as follows
1
.
With
PLURAL.
29
With
PLURAL.
J.
Fein.
Masc.
"Wanting
,ji^.
30
AEABIC GRAMMAE.
letter,
and therefore
a hemzet
,
To remedy
this defect
we add
el
J^\
^'^\
if the vowel of the aorist be if the vowel is either or as Jjel but with
,
as
or
by prefixing J
_
apocopated
strike."
Imperative.
PLURAL.
Fern.
Masc.
DUAL. Common.
SmGULAR.
Fcm.
Masc.
h6\
L5
aorist.
31
EXAMPLES.
Aorist.
Preterite.
4.
_j^L to rejoice.
,i
to understand.
to be safe.
/>^o^
,;>^
5.
Jxl;
Jaj
9 9
<^
(__J^ to be charming.
^
^\^
to
bo easy.
is
6.
\.xsj
(>i
is
to reckon.
This form
verbs;
as,
common
in
weak
<^jl
cl.J^(j
to inherit.
j^V.
1J3
^o
^^ near.
different forms,
e.g.
jAdepress.
To be
To
cultivated.
j^5^ To sadden,
^J
raise.
j^
To
The noun
of action corresponds in
many
respects
to our infinitive.
In simple verbs
it is
irregular in its
32
AEABIC GRAMMAE.
1st,
Transitive J-xi
Neuter Jyi
MEASURES.
33
transitive
1.
Adding one
which in
verbs strengthens or intensifies the action/ and in neuter verbs imparts a transitive sense.
2. 3.
Prefixing
clj to
Adding two
or
more
modify
adding
letters to
The simple
2, 3,
triliteral
verb
is
considered as the
first
numbered
and
so on,
up
to 15.
somewhat
different order.
SIGN"IFICATIOIT OF
Conjugation^ J^sT.
cl Jcatd to
(20).
The
prefix of hemzet
It
is
of form generally indicates an extension of meaning," O-^ yy-^y ^ y yl^^L,-> y y -i, y <J ^
'
^
's.
"-V
^-^
See Es-Sheikh Hasan el-Burini in his commentary upon Ibn el-Faridh's verse
\^yy^y
i^
t^'Ci-^
yy
->'i3
ju^
f^
y y
(^
'^
c -o
-i-^
^> ^f:\
^^\
A_^...
^..,i liL-^-i^
^.)\
c^oU
34
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
The
3p1 "lie caused to descend," from 3JJ '4o descend;" CJ^\ "he caused to strike,"
Transitive or causal
as
irom
L-jja.
to,
Going
to 'Trak."
or
making
for,
a place
vanced;" ^jt
"he
retreated."
for sale,"
"to
sell."
;
Turning into
desert."
as
J^jV\ Lp/i\
"
Being or becoming
in the morning
;
at a certain time; as
^^\J\
"he was
A transitive
this
form; as
C^\ "he
prone," from
Z<>
"he throw
him on
his face."
Ind
Conjugation^ Jxi.
intensifies the
meaning
Its
and makes
it,
if
neuter, transitive.
most
"he
fromjli"
"he broke;"
pieces," from
^\
cut."
c^-rki
"I
"he
Attributing
to,
regarding
as,
or
making out
to
be
as
jlS "he
^
-jj
as,
>
L_?j^
or proved
him
a liar."
35
used in deriving a verb from a noun ; as " a tent ;" j1^ "to ''he pitched his tents," from I^IL
is
"a
skin."
identical with that of the English
;
This use
is '^almost
as
to
ord
Co7ijugaiion,
^}s.\i.
The
insertion of alif
between the
first
and second
;
radicals gives
''he fought,"
an idea of reciprocity
^iL-
to the action
as
Jj'Ij
from
"he
struck."
The notion
party
who
as t-jLtU
'
he doubled,
but
is
"he
travelled."
Avi-ote
book," or
"he
disclosed."
When
make
it transitive,
may be
as ^
letter."
used in the
" he wrote
CJ^
him;"
Z:l^
by the
of the
jlft5
as ^ys
"he was
brought forward."
From
this sense
ac-
quiring; as LlJiV^
"he was
he was affected
36
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
with the fear with which others inspired him," from cl-^ "to inspire with fear;" ^(i "he grew proud," from
is
Z^ 2nd
conjugation
(from fjll)
"a
pillow."
This
cu)
,
is
"li
^^^^^
3rd conjuga-
This prefix of
cls to
Thus,
if it
be said of any
to a distance,"
"he fought,"
or SzIj
"he removed
^Cj
it
"removed
to a distance,"
and
Jj'115
"fought against;"
be passive
inasmuch as
it is
The
sense of feigning
illness."
come
A hypothetical
form
^^j^ must
ill,"
"to be
can only
mean
was
could
37
mean
that he displayed
it to
mean
afflicted
with
illness in order to
produce an
upon another,
he assumed
illness.
^itli
Conjugation^ jilsU
tlio
"I cut
it;'"
It is necessarily
Conjugation^
Jj;jt-^i\.
differ materially
the only difference being that while the last indicates the
state or condition resulting from, or exhibits the effects
L^^\
cether, or
was in a
collected state."
From
this idea of
"being in a
state
obtains a reflexive
"he took
to a trade, or to
gaining
In
this
way
;
it
and
J^ll^
thus
we
\J%^\^ or
\J*.^^:^\
"tliey disputed.'
The form
is,
of
noun used
as
we
38
appears to
"be
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
formed from
this
by doubling
it
tlie last
con-
into a verb.
The
licmzet el katd,
here
This form
is
is
very
y^^\ "to
be red," fromj^! "red;" iljlL\ "to be hump-backed," from (Ij^y "a hunch-back."
10 th Conjugation, Jjtk-jU
This conjugation implies asking or seeking, asyxu-^
From
to be," ^jX^\
"he was
becoming or turning
^^y^^-^M
i.e.
"The
to
become stone-hard.
11//^ Conjugation,
jl*.j^^.
This
is
and
is
merely an ex-
e.g. ^ll^^
The
inser-
tion of the
39 be of
may
therefore
mean
to
^A^
;
"to be rough."
14th Conjuga-
and
5th
^^^\
may be
which
and
it
must be
left to practice
stu-
may
or
may not be
employed.
THE PEEXEEITE.
(30).
The
re-
etc.
THE AOBIST.
The
aorists of derived
:
The vowel
flection,
is
a termination of in-
and
it is
affected
by
words
therefore independent
and accidental
to,
40
AEABIC GRAMMAR.
and
pointed
4.
41
as
Aorist.
Preterite.
11.
JUi^jSUip
jUij[J_,l^;], JUi)-,etc.
(3)
THE IMPERATIVE.
is
The imperative
formed like
by
re-
prefix,
final
^^ijli
Jjli
"he
"fight thou."
As
if
it
is
prefixed,
42
ARABIC GEAMMAE.
The Nouns
they
may be ranged
in
43
(32). TABLES OF
Preterite,
Aorist.
Imperative.
Noun of Action.
FERST GKOXTP.
One
2.
letter
Doubled
>-
ex
s -^ ox
or iUjtiJ
4.
)^i
c
c
J^^*
J>*il
9
3.
Inserted
^C
.Uli L/^
JUi or LL:li.-
Aor.act.
J^....i^j
pass.
Jj...,,
SECOND GEOUP.
L
"
"i
consequence.
5.
-Si
^y
-Jj
z'^''
Consequence of Consequence of
,
2.
.bcJ
s
6. 3.
,
^^
J^li:^
Aor. act.
_;
pass.
c-
THIRD GROUP.
Two
7.
or
more
Exhibiting the effect of the action of the root 8. Eoing affected by the action of the root 10. Asking for or regarding
as the original idea ex(J-XAlM
XO^'
(J-x-ij
9
O^O ^
\x^J\
J^ ....
;
^_
pass.
^....\
Ci
FOUKTU GROUP.
9.
^o
'-J.
<
-'o
Colour or defect
11.
Aor.
act.
Ui...ij
Great intensity
3.)
Aor.
act.
J'^l
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
PASSIVE.
QUADRILITERAL VERBS.
45
Examples of
qiiadriliteral
^^^\ " it
(a crowd) thronged."
46
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
tenses, persons, derivative conju-'
In the formation of
The
triliteral
1j^.j>
verbs
is
of the
"one blow."
it is
;
From
all
as
conj.
from ^_^)j
ijlllk)!
"one
de-
The Noun
verbs; as
of Species
is
of the form
ii^ from
triliteral
^ij "he
all
rode," 12^
it is
"mode
or style of riding;"
and from
other verbs
;
as
or style of departure."
(3) AGENT.
is
tri-
literals it is of
the measure
as CJJh
"he
struck,"
letters
first letter \
of the aorist
47
penultimate with
' ^
Ij
as
S
'-'
ly
''
^,s.L>
^,r>-_vj
to roll,
^ j>--V<
a roller.
^^^^ generously.
*^1
, ^ia^il
/^.O
to
be generous,
fV^* ^ ^^"^
Jsx^i
to deduce,
.isa^w^ one
who
deduces.
From
measure
is
alwaj^s of the
^^j^-* ''beaten."
it
From
letter
others
is
initial
of the
aorist
passive into ^
mim
pointed with
dhammah ; as
Preterite.
48
"Verbs of
.
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
more
S
. . .
,
otherwise,
J^
A,p\ to honour,
(V^
honouring.
J.j'li
to fight,
Jjlii' fighting.
.^J\
to deduce,
_,isa*. deducing.
j waiv
we
in form-
it
must be
restored,
and the
49
"a
"
to
remain stationary."
As
in the verbal
tvatv is
restored
and the
Icesrah retained in
Preterite.
Aorist
cV"tJ
kc
as
iju:.^
performed.
,
In
all
radical of the
of the
Koun
as
of
vowel
Noun
Time
Preterite.
^^^^j ^j^^^.^
^/
X:*^-'
t^>"*
^ P^^^^'
licsrali iii
;
noun
.,
of this form
1 Aonst. ,
as
^^^^ p,.^(.g^
NounofTiri3
'^
Preterite.
SOX
j^ ^^j
I
>
T^^
.-.<,;>,
The penultimate sometimes, but rarely, takes even when the last-mentioned rules do not apply
Preterite,
/-
kesrahj
;
as
Aorist.
Koun
^^
f 9
1^
''
_li5 to rise,
^'^i
9 ft^^
t4-^'*
star or constellation).
jjh. to set,
'-r'^-^K
f-r^y^*
a.
the "West.
po X
/VJj to
risCj
^JJ^,
(Jj^-*
the East.
iXs-' to adore,
a^-^.
(JXuu:.j
J^jsT'* a
mosque.
cLCJ
to
perform the
CS^'-^
he Hojj.
60
to slaughter,
AllABIC
GEAMMAE.
j'j^'* a
,;5>-
i^^sT
ox
^L<s to dwell,
..X-u*-'
1^***^ a dwelling.
L::-^i^ a place
e:^
/
to
grow,
r>
^ -^
the elbow.
/-
^ ^
fall,
p f
<^
^
l^JLu*.^
kiL; to
iji
^^^^^.
a place in
which one
falls.
^^ /
through
the nose
j^i
j=^
the nostril.
it is
"an
adze,"
^L^
''a knife."
When
the most
common forms
are
EXAMPLE.
MEASURE.
i^j^ a
file.
JUX^
^l:iL a key.
s
(^o'^'St^"^) a strainer.
^^
weak
final
radical,
iJiJtS^
M'^
(
I
^(^^
x-
^^^^,03^^^
(^
JffO^
(J:sa,
ijxkyt as
kxw-^ a snuff-box,
^^X
9 ^ f
1^
^pyc
<LijtL as
iHs'^* a box
i.e.
the eyes,
'
tLj -s:r*
is
is
applied, or in
which
kept.
61
(8)
NOtJN'
OF QUALITY.
This noun
is
called
by the
Ai-ab gi'ammarians
'4he
From
3-fli
triliterals it
is
"handsome," from
^.1>-;
It is seldom
measures J^*, as
and J^,
simple
;
as ^J^.
From
all
beside
triliteral
verb
it is
identical
Agent
from Ja^I.
(9)
This
is
is
Noun
of Quality,
J,-e!
;
and
regular in
^"^ j\J\
be observed that the 9th conjugation of the derived forms is nothing more than this noun with its
It will
final radical
doubled to give
it
form
it
into a verb.
(10)
Jxil as
t\JJi\
more learned.
JA
i^\
God
is
Greatest.
52
If indefinite
tive.
it is
ARKBIC GEAMMAR.
comparative and
if definite
superla-
When
is
its
nse
is
impossible, the
employed
instead, followed
of the noun; as
i"
./.=-
^\
Stronger as to redness,
without reference to
its
Koun
of Superiority,
when
triliterals, is
always of the
fii'st-men-
Jjtst.
it is
From
word
all
other verbs
made by
Jv^^
"more"
or "stronger;" as
more
or
L*U::j\ jJ^\
of this
noun
are
as
j\^
-^
a great helper.
,,
J,^^
ij'^j^'*
<_:'.
J^ a
vey
tnithfiil person.
,,
(.t-iwu*^
JbtL
Jjxj
,,
u^j
^'^
with an
important mission.
Q^^
J^
1^../*
sick.
<f^_j^
wounded.
63
to tlio
form
is
often equivalent in
meaning
In
all
tlie
addition of a consonant or
sponding
in
this respect
to
the
four-letter
group of
derived verbs.
By
the addition of
is
'i
to
imply unity,
;
still
greater in-
tensity
as
^\>\j
a reciter.
J^
<LLsi
as
itCs'^ a
of unity).
title
jjy:^b
,,
CiJ'^ Discriminating (a
of the
Khalifeh Omar).
Jjxj
,,
{j^*-^:
Most Holy.
bulky.
cautious.
^
UUi
^
i O
X
-'
luV*-
to the student
himself the
by means
The
him
on
that i^jl
makes
^^^
this
by the
table
64
In
tliG
AEABIC GRAMMAE.
tabic on pp.
class
5657
is
(3)
then
we
find
that the
imperative of this
(1)
for
i (2)
for x
and
is
Coming next
this class, its
to the
noun
is
of action,
we
form
1y^ and
cl^
belonging to
^
which
is
we
get
Patient.
Noun
of Action in
mim.
'
aj.^
t__j.-.i^
L^j^a^
we
wish
to
Aorist.
J-ilJ =
JjU?
J.C
. .
AJ
i.e.
any
letters
the
^^^:
Passive (Preterite).
Passive (Aorist).
i.e.
(all
c_.-Jl^'.
Agent.
i.e.
by the
dots being
unchanged
as before)
Noun Noun
Ci;^*
^ )j^
\
s.
J
Jx
^ = as
_.
s S
y. ^^
^ ' f
before c_-^ui
And
so
on with
all
As
diff'ers
it is
in this
all
method
from
cannot be over-estimated.
METHOD OF USING
Anotter advantage
is
TIIE TABLES.
55
when he
a
The following
between
(35).
SIMPLE
(]
mil of
'ii.tv.
Noun
of
Noun
Agent.
Patient.
of
Noun
bpc-cies.
Action in
mi in.
of Time or Place.
Instrument, or
Intransitive
Noun
I
I
of Quality.
Agent.
^^ ^
5,li
bti^
J,li
;>
)>
))
>^
S"
-^
y'
151
.ddins^ a to
liouii
'^i^
the of Action.
?j
Ic
. .
.^
Lc...,
Jx...,-#
l.^]
58
ARABIC GEAMMAE.
lEREGULAE VERES.
(36). Irregular verbs are those of
third radicals
are alike, or
^ or ^^
.
weak
I.
letters
^ ,
They
alike,
and in the
inflections of
II.
is
hemzeh\ as 1^1
read."
"he
took," jll
"he
first
asked,"
1^'
"he
III. Assimilated, in
which the
radical is either j
or ^^; as j^j
radical affects the forms of the verb but slightly, the inflection is
1 Y.
Hollotv,
'J
(for
Jy) "he
"he
as
sold."
Y.
letter
;
Defective,
Sjk
of
which the
final radical
is
weak
made a
^j)
^J).
Combinations of these
may
of course occur,
and a verb
may have
to,"
all
J^ "he repaired
"he had
be noticed that the weak consonants or semivowels are \ licmzeli (not alif)^ ^ ivmv, and ^ ya alif is not regarded as a consonant at all, but only as a prop for
It will
:
59
DOUBLED VERBS.
j^ "to extend,"
PASSIVE.
"to
flee,"
^^
"to
bite."
60
It will
is
ARABIC GRAMirAR.
(which
in the
is
(which
is
the characteristic
vowel of the
namely
J.
as well as
3U
(for
jjU), in the agent, are exceptions to the rule which prohibits a quiescent letter
admisit
first,
were shortened
would be impossible
as the 3rd conj. active and the passive of the first; and, second, because
letter is
when
the assimilation
is
jU =
CI
because otherwise
it
would
letters
violate
the rule
from occiu-ring
The
PLURAL.
G2
ARAEIC GEAM^iIAR.
the
hemzet
restored
by the
C3
64
PASSIVE.
ARABIC GEAMMAR.
TERES WITH FINAL
3.
nE:!J:ZEH.
65
\.i>
1,3
to
"to
66
ARABIC GRAMMAE.
The
WAW.
jA;
67
in the aorist,
is
(2)
when
the verb
is
of the measure
di'opped in
INITIAL
J.
alone,"
^^^ "to
PASSIVE.
inherit,"
ll;5
"to be beautiful."
68
ARABIC GRAMMAK.
2.
INITIAL
^,
^;
,-uuj
''to ripen,"
^J
"to be dry,"
^^
"to ascend,"
to be easy.
PASSIVE.
G9
nature of
a medial j or ^j,
I must
make
defective" really
holloio
verb
is
we may then
represent the
;
hiatus by the
refer
mark *
as
we
and
if
we
them
to
Thus Jo,
aorist
Jyij,
is in
the
to be a verb
it
with a medial
of the
measure
J^,
J^.,
i.e.
In
is
Jb
Jj-S!
'
^-^^
second
an
Jy
*i
;
to
pronounce as
however,
we
regard
it
measure will
(in
which
it to
case,
having a medial
us refer
belongs,
namely
J-'^ij, (_Ui,
and
i
*3,
J*^J. Here
in
J*3
coalesce into
and the
dliammah
* i^.
from
its
position in
the peuultimato,
where
it
be inherent
to all
vowels
see (5).
The
is
treated as the
j--^^.,
with a medial
^^^Jti
,
ya
(_>,
may
be written
>
c*j and
is
referred to class 2,
J^;
be-
that
u, ^-^-
This
is,
of course, merely a
it at least
70
ci;
AEABIC GRAMMAE.
"to
sell," Jli
PASSIVE.
71
made by
IIEA9X7EB
(J**:'.
W**
DUAL.
Fem.
Masc.
9
EINGVLAR.
Fem.
o
-'
Masc.
y
Masc,
^
yi^9
^ ^
ei^lj
<l9<j9
Jlj
^
of"
3rd person.
CCOC
CO
UiJj
c:^1j
9
l::-Jj
O
9
2iid
1st
PASSIVE.
PLTJRAI/.
DUAL.
Fem.
Masc.
9
SrNGXTLAR.
Fem.
y-O
Masc.
Fem.
Masc.
:^L
<)
JJj
3rd person.
;o
CT
r^:
Uuli
ij:^
9 O
u:^
2nd
1st
Ui
AOEIST OP THE
j).
PLUHAL.
72
AEAEIC GEAMilAR.
).
TENSES OF THE
HOLLOW VEEB.
73
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
P.'^^^
y,'^'^
AOEIST OF IHE
PLURAL.
Fern,
!),
SINGULAR.
Masc. y y y
Masc.
Fem. 9 - y
(
y y
liUr (J
e;
...liUr
sLsT'
y y
uJls^ 3rd
9
person.'
y y
^i\=^
9
_jUi^*
y'i-
2nd
1st
PASSIVE.
PLURAL.
Fem. y <^ y 9
Masc.
DUAL.
Fem.
y y 9
Masc.
9
SINGULAR.
Fem.
9
,
Masc.
\y
y 9
y 9
y 9
4_Jlikr'
uJl^
9 y 9
3rd person.
<^
yUl^
9
c;^
9
y f
"%
ji\s-\
1st
^J^^
f.y^y y,yy
1),
MEASTJEE
jJ*JJJ
DUAL. Common.
lili.
SINGULAR.
Fem,
Masc.
o y
c;^^
^l^
L-i:i-
2nd person.
The
defective verb
is
to learners;
per-
contained in the
becomes
(
\
in all the
"
't,
i_f
like
c.
I.
^y
Here the
final
vowel
is
^_f
is
c.
^
iy
<
This letter
d.
>'
is
75
becomes
remains unchanged j
)
e,
( .
cS
g.
become
c5.
A. (
i_>
76
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
by Ibn Malik.
p
<5
^o ^
>>
'-
o5 S ^
i-t
tt
4 S ^
^O-^/ o
>
op
-Ci
fx-xx
Any
is
alif or
wdw
or
ya
is
known
as
final) alif
all
in such verbs as
J*^,
In both
cases
and
to express
the apocopated
all
weak
radical in
three
by doing
DEFECTIVE VERBS.
jjl
^J
"to be
^^
PASSIVE.
77
Verbal
Noun.
78
ARABIC GEAMMAE.
79
BX7BJUNCXIVE MOOD.
PLURAL.
Fem.
Masc.
/
DUAL.
I
SINGULAR.
Fem.
Masc;
Fem.
Masc.
3rd person.
'4/^
2nd
I*
"t
iBt
80
(fII^AL j).
DUAL.
Common.
SINGULAR.
Fem.
Masc.
i-o^
oi
^o^^
Si
wjil
{i^i'cS
2nclper3.
o'J
1st Energetic
(^^j}i^
i^j^^
2iid
>r
U.
O
O''
^ ^'
.
^_s),
MEASURE
J^.
J-""
DUAL.
Fem.
bk-i
SmOULAR,
Masc.
Tern.
2,
Masc.
\^y
..
*J
^ l5'*^
^^^ person.
Si
co^^
c<'o
^^
V
y
'-^^^J
o-'
*
2nd
1st
u-^
PASSIVE.
PLUEAL.
Fem.
-'
DUAL.
Fem.
Masc,
9 ?
i^
SINGULAR.
Fem.
y
9
Masc.
p
Masc; y ?
"^^J
Si
<"
\^J
y
9
3rd person.
o"
<>
yj
^^j
9
c:-N-'^
9
2nd
1st
c:-:r^j
DUAL.
Fem.
y
f^y
SINGULAR.
Maso.
'
Masc.
Fem.
Maso.
o--
9i^y
c
^_5^y
^^c-V.
3rd person.
vy
9 (^y
iy
>
'^-^
^
1st
See note,
p. 77.
^-).
81
PLURAL.
Fem.
Masc.
DUAL.
Fem.
Muse.
SINGULAR.
Fem.
Masc.
ujV
/^_5^.
3rd person.
ltV
u^v
^.
1st
c-
DUAL.
Fem.
Masc.
SINGULAR.
Fem.
Masc.
L5^'
LS^-
'^^'^
person.
u
L^y
!/
L5^y
L^y
2n(i
L5^J'
1st
APOCOPATED.
PLURAL,
Fem.
Masc.
DUAL.
Fem.
Blase.
SINGULAR.
Fem.
C/^
Masc.
G^
3rd person.
G-'
G^
^^y
-r^
yy
W'V'
Gt
2nd
Ist
1st ENERGETIC.
PLURAL.
Fem.
w >
Lf^
DUAL.
>'G-^
SINGULAR.
Masc.
Masc.
"Si
Fem. X G''
Fem.
Ci
-^
Masc.
gi
G''
G-^
G^
^^rV
- ^
I.
..
c;:^^.
3rd person.
G^
..1
cJ^y'
cr^^y
2nd
^^^
eJrr'V
82
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
2nd energetic
PLTTEAL.
DUAL.
SINGULAR.
Fern,
rem.
Masc.
*
Masc.
"Wanting.
^J'^Jl
^rr^y Wanting.
^^A
3r(i
person.
"Wanting.
^j^Ji
>
'.
f'^
'.'''
Masc.
DUAL. Common.
SINGULAR.
Fem.
^c-^j^
Masc.
^ (*jI
2nd person.
^ o
1st Energetic
'
i^^^:'^j^ ^
<.^
i^J^
er*J
', '' t.-'
2nd
J^A;*.
< ^ cJ^'
PLURAL.
Fem.
Masc.
DUAL.
Fem.
C-*5
SINGULAR.
Masc.
Fem.
o
-^
Masc.
^ ^
Uk*s
"-"^J
L^J
^^^ person.
L*::-.*?
JL^^j ^^:^j
9
2nd
1st
^
!;
"
>}
WVA^
u:^*^
PASSIVE.
PLURAL.
Fem.
Masc.
DUAL.
Fem. yy 9
Masc.
SINGULAR.
Fem,
9
1^
Masc. y 9
\^a >'
i,
^^"^J
9
iii'j
L<fJ
9
^^^ person.
<^
''9
Xa^^s 'J
UtM^
^-^^-^j
2nd
let
,,
?J
1
'^>
See note, p. 79.
>>
83
PLURAL.
Fem.
^ t/
DUAL.
Fem.
X X ox
^ Ox
Masc. X o -^ ox
Masc. X X OX
Fem.
xox
Masc. X Ox
^y
X ^ox
/lTV.
3rd person.
XOX
xOS
^j\
PASSIVE.
let
PLrRAL.
Fem. X Ox O^
Masc. O X o^
DUAL.
Fem.
Masc.
8INGULAH.
Fem.
X 07
xxo?
xxo^
Masc. X o/*
C5*^y
C
/lT^'
xo?
3rd person.
xo?
ui
ltV"
kS^J 2nd
,\
t^-/
SUBJUNCTIVE.
PLURAL.
Fem.
^r
DUAL.
SINGULAR.
Masc. X xox
Masc. o X ox
Ist
XOX ox
uy
Fem. XX ox
Fem.
Masc.
xox
tc-*/
O xox
xox
i^ir:*.
x'OX
"^"^^
person.
W/
L^j"
APOCOPATED (jussive,
PLURAL.
u5^j^
ETC.).
1st
84
ARABIC GEAMMAR.
2nd energetic.
PLURAL.
Fem.
Masc.
DUAL.
SINGULAR.
Fem.
JIasc.
AVanting. u**^^.
ij,-J-;
fjir'J,
t/ -'
^^^ person.
Wanting,
Wanting. ^\y^Ji
-'
o^
e;trV
c;--^^^'
2^^
1st
t),
DUAL. Common. X xO
SINGULAR.
Fem.
^^js
m-
i^j^
3rd person.
xoxo
1st Energtic i^---^jj^
-ii
P ^ c
i^ri'l
o y
xo
0^0
Wanting.
2nd
J,
Wanting.
^^^^^^
(38),
\J\
(initial ^
and
final
cs-,
. ,
measure JxlJ
Jli),
" to
guard
;"
measure jIIj
Jxl), " to
be
J^l-
^),
"to follow
close upon,"
PASSIVE.
DOIBLT liirERFECT
2.
VI RBS.
MEDIAL J
A>-D
FIXAL
_j
OE,
(_>.
(_5^ (final
^,
tj:,
measure jAi
J-^j)?
^^Q),
(final
measure Jxi;
PASSIVE.
"^^ ^^
"^^^^^^
irrigated.
86
(39).
ARABIC GRAMMAE.
Treterite.
87
regular,
and
is
used, as
not
jQ
with
Jcesrah are
Preterite.
S8
third conjugation,
ARABIC GRAMMAE.
which we
be
'jli.
find to be J.^li
of
Ua
will obviously
jy,
of the
measure J-s
becomes
which
this
case will
bejjUj; but j^ by g
^.
person
for the i of the
we
get
'^^'
The
final
variable,
particles,
etc.,
but the
remaining vowels of the forms are constant, and therefore exert a stronger influence
upon a weak
letter.
By
all difiiculties as to
;
the conjugation of
shall find that
verbs containing
weak
and we
such a thing as a reaUy irregular verb does not exist in the Arabic
language.
The student
until
is
recommended
he
is
the permutations
;
the foregoing
him
INDECLINABLE VERBS.
(41). Indeclinable verbs are those
tense.
^J
"he
is
not,"
^li
"perhaps,"
preterite.
tive: cyla
SINGULAR.
Fern.
Mase.
THE
NOUN".
89
ll^ ,
which
is,
however, not
is
II^, literally,
"take and
di'ag
along" =
"and
so on."
THE NOUX.
(42).
Nouns
PEIMITI^^ NOUNS.
Primitive nouns are those which cannot be referred to
any verbal
root.
The following
common
Triliterals.
90
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
3. Quinqneliterals.
MEASURES. EXAMPLES.
Si''-'
MEASURES.
EXAMPLES.
ff^O^'^
jLti
Jijti
jLi
S
-'O
^ o ^
JiUi
:tijA.sET an old
woman.
etc.,
"a
camel,"
by
practice.
have already treated of the nouns immediately There are a great many other forms ex-
Trades and
S^
-'
offices are of
the measure
Ajl:;*i
Illje
as
ds^^
craft, artizanship.
office
of secretary,
iJ^UsT trading.
dJ^Uri- tailoring.
<bjt^ office
of viceroy.
S '^
d^^
\\
agriculture.
tLJi^
office
of Caliph.
2.
headache.
Jw*-' cough.
<-^U$
fXij catarrh.
liver complaint.
3.
^^ or 2r^
J-r;^ neigh.
as
^y cry.
^Uj
(J
bark.
S
i\j bray.
(J*-y^ sob.
c:jUj roar
91
3^
as
revolving.
^^^1^
palpitating, fluttering.
-
J^jj^
I
jfjCJ:^ running.
Ch~^J departure.
5
5. riiglit
or avoidance
flight.
by 3^:
^s
J\.^ " bolting," running
^uV refusal.
off.
j\J^
6.
as
crust.
^j^
s^o;>
^ ^^o'
a fragment.
7.
A small
i?-'0 ?
quantity,
a handful,
trifle.
by lUi
as
J^'Oi'
X^J
ij
hJ^
jkJ a
8.
as
yellowness.
"^^
;
9.
as
sweepings.
^U5
I
02
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
The following
1.
are feminine
as
d^
'^Illnd,"
'J\^
to females, as It
"a
\^6>-\
"a
sister,"
J^l^ "pregnant."
Nouns ending
in
i',
as
o^U "a
it
;
striker" (female),
and some
i'Sllc
Nouns ending
in
o,
as ^^_^^
"Sulma"
(a proper
^<j "remem-
^__^'^)
"the world."
is
may
4.
be masculine.]
Nouns ending
in
^T,
as
^l^^\ "Khansa"
(a proper
*T.s**
^U'li
"grandeur, sublimity,"
Proper
countries,
as
J^
"Egypt,"
6.
Names
of wind,
fire,
or wine,
as^^ "wind,"
"hand,"
^^
^^
fire," ^X
" wine"."
The double
"eye,"
J^
''shoulder,"
^j
"foot."
(Some others
J;-?
also feminine, as
"tooth,"
li
"liver.")
Collective nouns, especially
8.
i"
to
"a
dove."
All
"broken"
plurals.
10.
93
lieads giveu
do not
all
above.
94
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
^ and
2.
l!
before
become
as
a young
girl.
^i
J*j;
as
a youth, fem.
il:xi
J^
make
their feminines in
^S^
y
drunk, fem.
angry,
j^y^
^ o
--
X O X
^L^i
But
J^iti
^^^
as
?x
<^x
jjbr naked
3. jlsl
t^-jy. '^
when
it
makes
its
feminine ^Jbe
as
fem.
^1
/x o S ^*rf>'
greatest,
i^j^
^^ '
smallest
t/r*^
j/^
first (for
JV)
o
J^i
j^\
4.
(for^^n)
o>^l
Jiet
its
when
it is
has for
feminine
^x o S
-1
*lii
red
as
xo ^
fem.
^\
^xoS
^i-tf^
P X o
yellow
,,
'\jLa
_' ox
j^bjc*.
c-JJo-! hump-backed
5.
j^ when
it
different
/x
jy^ i^^j
a patient man.
j^
'i\y%\
a patient
woman.
95
Eut
J^
S
the feminine, as
o^
oX
^fy*
spy
'^,fj^
<1.'L>.
S-'
9 y
^^j
Vice versa
for the
s S
S
J-^
^
in the sense of
form
spy
murdered man
s'i-y
1^
J^l^i ij-^j a
y
^y^
y
'i\'j^\
'J
a murdered
woman
man
9 y
f^j'>-
J"^
S'i-y
a wounded
S
^
.
f^.y>-
Sy
y j_-uLi)
?/ Sy
..
/
y
_
S
S
-aJ
^jf^
Sy
y
t^-k!
AiJal.
The
J^,
Jl^.^,
enemy," fem.
^
j2,lir^
''
'Lsz
^-w^ y
^-z
'
7.
Nouns which by
pregnant.
^Ir*
s
'
a divorced wife.
>a
girl
with swelling
breasts.
^^sJls^
menstruating.
C6
ARABIC GEAMMAE.
COMMON GENDEE.
(46).
or feminine
jli]
97
"NOTE
ON THE TEEMIXATION
i expresses either
if.
(47).
The termination
unity.
1
In derived nouns
it
generally serves to
of the
a female
In primitive nouns
slave
it
serves to
as
^Ic " a
3.
boy"
it
Sometimes
as
"^
"fruit," i'.^
"a
fruit."
gifts."
4. Itdistinguishessingularfromplural, as^>i^sr"aglft,"(_i:sr' 5.
versa, as J>"*'^
a camel driver,'
<OUj:?-
or apocopated, as
7.
8.
for
/^y|.
polishers."
f~ '^
And,
lastly, it is
a learned a professed
man,"
'L*ks.
man
reciter."
Note.
i^
is
written C-?
..I
.
at the
end of verbs,
'
--
as
c^j-i
and
DECLENSION OF NOUNS.
THE
(48). Arabic
CASES.
nouns have
tliree cases,
the nominative or
pendent.
98
AEABIC GRAMMAE.
and
^ (see
To
these temvm,
i.e.
Subjective
t^vtii a book.
Dependent
Objective
^-'l4 of a book.
yu^
a book.
THE A:XCIENT
DECLENSIO]!^'.
99
Or
tlicy
may
take
Subjective
M
\i\
Dependent
Objective
Aj\
<^j
Ai\
^j^}
As
Ul::jli
J^-^
lAb Jj
b IjUjI
IjsIjI
J,
Have reached
and ^^ may be declined in the ordinary manner, or after the ancient manner, as
100
ARABIC GEAMMAR.
of,
see p. 74)
must be
remembered
in
into ^'by/', as
Uj
for LJj.
^,
change the
of
letters, of
,
the form
Jj
* * *
^J^^y*
^j
^}S*
t^^
from
l^J ( .^j).
into
in ^^ or
Examples: dj "satisfaction;"
Cadi."
MEASURE.
INDEFINITE.
^Jxs
"a youth;"
^ji^ ''a
DEFINITE.
"With Article. 'With Pronoun.
Jjo
Subjective
uj^i
for
j^j
^
-ij
\^j
-^
i^U^
^
:(Uij
Dependent
Objective
Uij
,,
U?J LiJ
l^
ijJ^
ilJj
Juti
Subjective
^^:;J
,,
^:J
is"^"^^
(^'^
^'^)
Dependent
Objective
,^xj
^^^
^__^
15^'
i.^^'
*^ (^^ '^'^) ^^
C^''
^^
for
'^)
,U'J
Subj.
(>l^
Ijh^
(^^*^^
^-f ^
Depend, j^lj
Obj.
^r?*^^
}>
s^^
k^^^^
^JliiJl (regular)
^t^^
i^\i
W^ (regular)
temvin,
and
case.
classes.
IMPERFECTLY DECLI^'ED NOUNS,
1.
a.
101
as
originally
lives.
J^'J
the loiterer.
in
as
Foreign proper names of more than three letters, or which the middle consonant is pointed with u vowel
i^cli^i
"Joseph,"
'^\^ji\
"Abraham."
first,
Note.
Such
it is
because
has three
letters, the
quic scent.
2.
a.
..'
J Is- \
ones,
-'
foiirs.
to
^-^
?-y'*
^'^'""
tXr^^4 one
by
one,
^^
^^^''-
Some grammarians
to ten
;
viz.
^j^\a^
j>
fives,
I
1
jl^i
y
-
tens.
-'
o ^
to
j
'
o ^
^s^,*^*
five
by
five,
'
^
c.
J.
g^
"some,"
Nouns
of the form
scription,
as ^1^\
ft
Such words
as _j ^
nor comparative, and other nouns of the same form, which moreover
make
the feminine in
i,
are declined.
3. d.
if
descriptive,
their feminine in
as
!,ViI.
102
^'
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
drunk," feminine
Jf^\
but
if
the
first
syllable
be
if
they have a
"a
flint,"
or
make feminines
in
l^
clinable.
4.
termination
^T;^-*
mark the
(2)
" a rock."
plurals,
as^_^^ "wounded,"
or
-^XisJ^
"friends."
(4)
De-
scriptive
passive
adjectives,
as
^J^
"pregnant,"
"red."
JVoie.
s,
<!^^ and
5.
S,
if
they have
letters the
pointed with a vowel, as t-Ll^J "Zeinab" (a woman's name), Jil " Hell " ; but if they
is
quiescent, they
may
woman's name).
>>
Ifote.
6.
as ^!iV^
7.
a verbal
form,
as
s^^]
"Ahmad";
as
Ijjj
" Yazid,"JIi,
plui-als
"Shammar"
(Shomer).
letters
8.
Broken
after
an
IMPEEPECTLT DECLINED NOUNS.
inserted
as
"
103
alif,
1^\1^
''places
of worship,"
ulop)
J--/^^ or
;
middle
oj
as
^^l^ "lamps,"
arises
from the
Exception.
aJjl-Mtf
When a
i"
is
declined, as
"polishers."
noun
is
%
made
9
O^
S^
''
9-'?
O fO-O
9<i-i^^
"
'Tis as
And
as
my
grief,
father's heart."
Where
u-il^. is
INDECLINABLE NOUNS.
(52).
Some nouns
/ol--:
^'ojliAj^
!
" Niftawaihi,"
" Sibawaihi."
f* and
^ " silence
tenwm and
become
former
a^,
is
^,
and
104
AEABIC GRAMMAR.
THE
DTTAL.
MASCULINK
105
change
it
to j, as
may either leave it unchanged or from ^UL " a sinew in the neck," dual
for a radical letter, as
it
5lir(from
it
we may
either leave
unchanged or change
into
wdwy as
t^^^'^-1^
and ^^^l^.
Words
may
drop the
final cdlf in
^ is
the
as ^U-?li
"a
or
i^^jU-tflj
'i^\ buttocks,
I,
in forming the dual reject the fcmiinine termination in the following verse from the Ilamdsah
as
ac
longo
jam usu
attrita,
intra
quam
duoe cucurbita)
inclusse sint."
This verse presents an instance of an another grammatical peculiarity, namely, the use of J:^l, the numeral
ttvo,
to be an ellipse of
grain, as in the
(55).
The
plural in Arabic
is
formed either by
affixes
or
by a modification of the
as in English
we
say ship,
pi.
ships
man,
pi.
men.
106
ARABIC GEAMilAE.
first
The
kind
is
The regular
and objective
If
form
for the
dependent
cases.
the
singular be
is
a regularly
formed
:
participial
made by
is
.
addition
as
ter^
^
^i^
nom.
jThis
i
oblique'
mination
80 f^^
for
as
un=u,
,-
una
5j uu.
Fem.
'
"
^^
)
This
is
CLi]
affix i.
(56).
for
affixed
form
is
only used
Nouns of a participial form derived from verbs making their feminine in i and signifying rational beings. 2. Proper names of men, provided they consist of a
1.
single word,
3.
s.
J^^j
4.
6.
little
man,
plural (jy-^>y
Nouns
genders, as
f^_^ wounded.
patient.
THE NUMBERS OF
There are a few words
wliicli
NOr>,'S.
107
to the
form exceptions
plural
(^ij
^\i^ family,
'
^^\
^ijj
_jj possessor,
,,
and
I 1 .I.i
JU
^j\
jLs.
world, universe,
,,
i^y^'^^
earth,
^y^j^
s^^j^t: twenty.
ten,
year,
plural
i^^
i.e.
Together with
all
nouns similar
is
to the last,
I
nouns of
which
added by way of
;
compensation, as <LjU
tree,
i^ y
"'
"a hundred,"
"^.L^
.Li^j
"a thorny
A peculiarity
plurals,
is
may be
;
treated as broken
e.g.
Dep.
^J*^
Obj.
^^^
,
^ or tcnwm
must be applied.
\
tjy^^ by
z.
plural
,Ji2-.2^
Mustafa,
^^tsl^^s^y*
,,
h.
Before a hemzet
el-ioasl
'-^
^ and
9
take
and
ir'-'.-o
^^'^
respectively, as aQ^
^^~"
pl-
^ u:^
108
ARABIC GEAMIIAE.
^, as
JjJ iJ^us the strikers of Zeid.
nouns of
the form llxi remove the sukun and point the second
radical like the
first,
making the
plural
cJh6
unless the
is
not
removed, as
<i.^-.j
an egg, plural
CJU^o
by one of
'
The brother
of eggs going to
and
fro night
and morn."]
If the
noun be
Some-
times
it is
retained improperly
by
poetical license, as in
the verse
"
And
its
sighing."
make
their plural
ilihti
.
and sometimes
letter
euphony
If
the
weak
is
be
When
sukun
feminine plural; as
"rejection;"
i'
l^
pi. cS^ji,
"attack;"
iJ^.
pi. cL>1j^
li pL
K
ciLjlli
"glanders."
becomes
Cl^l
A
A
(from
final ^)
dj^j'^
^LIj
109
ci?
when
when
mutation;
e.ff.
subj. /j\^^
But
if
with fethah, because the Arabs are averse from the sound
p, which
results
with
kesra/i.
,!>jlj
may
thus, pi.
or cb\jl,j
But
if
the
first
radical has
dhammah
or kesraJi, such
"pinnacle."
the
plural
Nouns substantive
c:-?ii
make
as
Ij^
pi. ci;l^>-
"retirement,"
sometimes
cbllUi
tlie
case,
but
if
the
mlun may
may be
pointed
VhMCo. fcthali,
as lL'I'.J or cL'l'iJ.j
plural in &J\
is
frequently used
sense, as
pi.
ciJuUr..
ciJljl^*)
^Ld^
*
the
month Eamaclhan,
,,
2.
9
is
iU.j
considered by some as
equivalent
in
meaning
to
S o^ ij.j "a
state
or
dj-nasty."
110
AEABIC GEAMMAR.
BROKEN PLURALS.
(58).
Arabic grammarians
The The
to infinity.
common
to
both,
more forms.
When
plural
a plural of such a
noun
is
required,
it is
for the
by
affixing isj\.
The
The
this
plural, cannot
be
less
(59).
iSki
<LL*il
,,
/ii.
slave
iU***^^
,>
^l^i dress.
(This
only occurs
in
JUk>-)
,,
Jv.>-
load.
This
is
common
to plurals
of multitude also.
BROKEN PLURALS.
HI'
The
first
and
last
^\i\ and
The
the whole
(60).
class.
if
singular, as
by
*JLsl
<u^
GENDEE OF BKOKKX
(61).
PITJEALS.
Broken
-^
-^
^ y
O^
"CJ
Verily
my
people collected
togetliei',
And
talked of mm'dering
me
Every crowd
FOKMS OF
BSOKEIir' PLURALS.
(62).
1.
That which
an additional
letter
among the
.
That which
" ^^ apostle."
the plural of
2;4;
3.
Sli plural
of
Ju-t
112
Irregular
AEABIC GEAiTilAR.
triliteral
PirEAL OF QrADEniTEEALS.
(63).
The measure
for
paragraph,
(3)1(2) CD,
>>, ,
may
f.
be
which
J^Ul*,
y^
J^ll^
etc.,
as the position of
is
^
in the form
(1)
(3) -(2)
immaterial.
^^
Thus from
.
(1)
_^li
'i
'^
= ^j}l^
i
(the
"key," we get
into ^),
\
\
changing the
where
the
first
radical
of the measure
(4) (3)
(2).
And
from
fii'st
'(3)
'
(j)
ji
s^=
^^ Ji^l^
1^1:^ ^
"jewel,"
s>-
we have
where the
radical
occui's in the
first
place
(1).
PLrBALS OF Qri>'QrEIITERALS.
(CI). In
words of
five or
more
letters all
(s-":0
U
'(4)
^
(3)
"^
L.^
^-(2) -(J)
u^-^
quince,
-,'^
(J)
^ j
letters
same as those
fact,
\;vhich are
in
these,
the
all
long vowels,
and the
in use;
tesM'id,
or
the increments
they are
. ;
113
Two main
1.
ideas
seem
to influence the
formation of plurals.
or
more
letters to express
an addition
to the
sense as in verbs.
2.
plural.
These are
plurals, as in the
measures of the
the form.
They
thus
upon a weak
for the
letter
l.\-A,*
= (4)
'(3)
(2)
(1),
forma(1),
'(2)
that
is
is
is
the
changed
word becoming
^j'li,*
tlie
The following
tables will
be found to contain
use.
The
114
1.
ARABIC GRAMMAE.
TABLE OF BROKEN PLURALS
115
116
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
TABLE OF BROKEN
PI,TJRALS.
117
FROM TEILITERAL
S
'oS
l^OTT^S continued.
118
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
119
FROM TRTLITERAL
S
-'O
"SOTJl^^S continued.
120
ARABIC GRAMMAR,
121
-^ P3
% O
Pi Pn
CO
(J
P-!
w o
Pi pq P^
o
-:
oi
122
ARABIC GRAMMAE.
8.
123
JUi
124
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
125
l^OTJNScontimied.
126
ARABIC GEAMMAE.
TABLE OF BROKEN PLURALS
127
lH OJJliiS continued.
verbs.
128
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
TABLE OF BROKEN PLURALS
129
^0X1:^5continued.
JUi
130
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
CO
P o
iJ
o
o H o
H o
CO
p
Ph
o o
fa
BROKEN PLURALS.
131
4.
j^Rare.
^
i?
5-
',1^ pl.
'r-
drinker.
^s>\a
pl. l_-;'ls:'^
comrade.
jj\j
j^
JU
helper.
/Lj sleeper,
'
ys-l;
,,
^'^^^ merchant,
jFt"^ "
J^ merchant.
f \;
^^-j peasant.
ih
rider.
'J
^li
*Lj
standing.
ilJlo
Rare.
-Jblj
pl. 'V^'-i
plunderer,
J^l)
S
''
pl.
j-^j thirsty.
s ^ ^
J\^
servant,
,,
tt'ls*^
comrade.
*jl.>.
(*^^
\^^^^
e_^>iJ:
seeker.
Plural of paucity
rare.
follower.
-%llr
pl.
.^Vj
j\^\ helper.
S<iP
Not from
defective verbs.
defective verbs.
workman,
^l:>pl.
. p
Ss-
ruler.
J.^!^
iLL*.^ perfect.
I)
j^y sleeper.
j>\^
jS^
magician.
_-^Ui
,,
c.^^-,i absent,
(j^
>,
132
ARABIC GRAMMAR,
^^
continued.
BPtOEEN PLURALS.
133
s^ iH^lj
-
5.
131
AEABIC GRAMMAR.
6.
BROKEN PLURALS
(3)
'(4)
\\2)
\l)
BROKEN PLURALS.
OF QUADRILITERALS.
'(4)
OK
(3)
({2)
(i)
136
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
BROKEN PLURALS
BROKEN PLUEALS.
OF
QJJADmLlTERALS conimued.
137
V)
-.(3)
\\2)
\l)
138
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
lEREGULAR PLUEAIS.
139
PLURALS OF PLURALS.
(66).
queliterals are
Jkj
(^J>j)
pi. JjJ
jU
(o^V.^)
gifts.
Or
a regular plural
the broken
plural, but it
see
(j^,,jO
J;";^
of pi. Cl^'U.!?,
IRREGULAR PLURALS.
(67). Plurals
c:jL^^
it
as if
from
A^.l
'CS
*i mouth,
i^yl
s^
it*
*t water,
iU^l
The two
women,
pi. ii^*3
and ^^y^^
S
(rare
y
^i
^/^^^
ijj\j
From
relative
may be
'i)^
as,
The
See p. 97 (47).
140
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
jist)
and desinner."
fern. <Lja^
SINGULAR.
"a
DUAL.
Fern,
Masc.
Masc.
Fern.
>>
Masc.
yy o ^
Qy ^ 9
<UJi\^
<-
ur:^'
\,^^'\y*
Subjective
'
c;* ^
x^ ^3>.^
^' o ^
i-^^ls^
^
o 9
Dependent
Obi active
do.
do.
do.
do.
l^X^
LJiX^
2.
tliree letters
the middle
of which
quiescent
name
ola
DUAL.
Fern.
SINGULAR.
Masc.
Masc.
Fem.
Masc.
s^
iX>J^
s<^y
i^\
Subjective
<Axa
JljJ
Dependent
Objective
do.
do.
do.
do.
IjkX^
\jkjj
3.
Proper names of
Arabic ; as
fication in
signi-
PLURAL,
141
(4) (3) (2) (i),
Broken
\
form
(4) -.(3)
(2) (1),
o ov ^T;
as x^\
'lions,"
ij^j
apes."
f
^^
f'}
it^.j
i_\~;\
Subjective
iJu\J
(A~;^
Dependent
Objective
i'wVi
1j<-j^
I'roper
names
of
men
or
women
not included in
classes 2
^l^
"Othmau
)j
L2j
Fem.
"Zeinab."
PLURAL.
Masc.
y P ^
(^
DUAL.
Fem.
9
SINGULAR.
Masc.
Fem.
9
Masc.
9
,
^xo-'
^o^
,
^'^9
^-ij
yyi^
*V*N-^.)l
ur
y
.,***J
>_^u.'
'O 9
,Uj>^ -J U'
.
Subjective
y
rr'f.j
O -^
^^.j
Xo ^i>
/Dependent
\
V^^XZ
^-y
>".
ami and
IJ'
(
Objectiv
2.
IN'ouns of the
'
l^;?
descriptive
of
colour
accomplished."
PLURAL.
Masc.
DUAL.
Masc.
SINGULAR.
Masc.
y 9 y
'^'i-
Kl)
)Ui
A^iil
Subjective
Dependent
^
c;r:
.^i\
^^o.
\^\
1
and
Objective
3.
Nouns
by the
last
addition
paradigm
142
4.
ARABIC GEA3IMAR.
Broken
as
^jd
''dirhems" (drachmce)
9
"keys."
y^
t?'
i-li.
J^l^J
I
Subjective
Dependent
and
^,
\
'
Objective
(70 j. DECLENSION OF
1.
NOtTNS ENDING IN A
*l,
WEAK
lEXTEE,
Nouns ending
in
reader."
WEAK
LETTER. 143
I^ouns endini? in M.
PLUKAL.
DUAL.
SIXOrLAR.
The
plural
ing.
regular
is
want-
J,h^
^Jlc
'Ijjoi
Subjective
<;^
I
^ 1 (
Dependent
and
See p. 130,
note.
SI iw 1 .j^^
Objective
Broken
of this.
4.
singular
Proper names of
men ending
6INGULAB,.
in
as
A.\
"Zachariah."
PLURAL.
DUAL.
Si
XX
un;/j
or
,^vl
XX
^k/0
Subjective
<*
_^
X X or
_-3
x^
r
I
Dependent
and
Si-C:
^^
(ObjecUye
6.
Triliterals
PLURAL.
ending in Tfor j
DUAL.
SINGULAR.
5>
Regular plural
wanting.
l,.-ic
Subjective
!5>
See
p.
96 {b^).
l^<!
Dependent
Objective
do.
l*.3
Similarly
etc.,
tl>1,
make
^^j-Jt, jj;^^^^
in the dual.
6.
Nouns ending
PLURAL.
in Jr for
DUAL.
---
Zs,
SINGULAR.
^X
Regular plural
wanting.
^lii
Subjective
See p. 96 (56).
^j:j
Dependent
Objective
do.
':j
144
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
in ,^ (witliout
tlie
Kouns ending
Quadriliterals ending in
PLURAL. DUAL.
for j^ or ^^.
SINGULAR.
^Js\i
uW^
.^li
Subjective
^Ij
L^lj
Dependent
Objective
OF BELATION,
is
(71).
The noun
of relation
all
syllable J>^
and rejecting
of
JX^;
J^j
"two
Zeids,"
rel.
o'^j; uj^jj
rcl.
J)-,
formed by rejecting
letters,
this, if
preceded by
J^^,
rel.
".-.-i,
so that the
two are
identical in form;
first
but
yds
if
letter,
the
of the two
is
changed
If the
also
into ^, as Jj^
first
"an Arab
stand in place of a ^
it is
letter, as J^l?
"a
When
the short
changed into
before the
l^
"staff,"
lsy^\
"youth," lsj^\
115
word,
it
if
is
the
fifth
letter in the
^ll?-
"a
when
radical, the
"a
and
reader,"
o'^.ljlj
;
in the neck
^\^^
But
''a
,^j,L1^
and
J/^lIi.
if it
When
final t/d
is
occurring after
with iemvm
.the
^Xg'
p. 75), this
is
is
changed
into
wcuv
and
preceding letter
relation, as
however, the
final
yd
remains unchanged, as
note
If
2).
it
f^li^
(see p. %Q,
occur as the
fifth letter of
it is
rejected
altogether in the
rel. ilss:^x^]
noun of
relation, as
"inimical,"
If the penultimate
or in nouns ending in
letter, as
jji
= j[^Ac
y^)^
'^-^'trPT
is
dropped in
of 'Ah',"
"a descendant
"of the
;
tribe of Juheineh,"
if
(a sect)
but
yd
is
retained
thus
2^
a proper
10
146
name, J<Li^;
'i^i^
AEABIC GRAMMAR.
''fall,"
l^^
-OJ^ "excellent,"
word be pointed
witli kest^ah,
relative,
vowel
is
changed
J
to fethah in
Tbut
it
forming the
if
letter,
may be
changed or not
of the
pleasure:
ZJ^
founder of an Arab
^u5.
In forming
restored to
its
relatives
J^Jj
"Leopards" (name of a
(title of
jl^t "Helpers"
Zfj^^\
the companions of
Mohammed),
IS'ouns of relation
s
J^IXj
the
last, as
uJCIXj "Eaalbekk,"
first
Jlr
<LlI:^ "fifteen,"
Jj>\^
".j^uX^,
unless the
"son,"
is
noun
Lt
of relation
made
from the
juJpr^;!
asjo
"Abu
Bekr," ^'p/j
'1
"Ibn
"
el
'
^^ ^
the suppressed
letter;
be a weak
as 'L^
"marking,"
tlf^-ij;
"a
promise,"
o'^ "promissory."
In words of which the last letter has been apocopated without any compensatory hemzeh being added, or of
letter
147
the missing
0\
1^'i.),
letter is restored in
forming the
relative,
pensating
i,
if it exist, is
^i-i
labial."
;[)\
But
if
added, as
middle
letter is quiescent
it
may be
as "^1
'"'
restored
or not at pleasure
if restored, it
^^
"
or
IjZ ^^'
''filial,"^3ori-p''bloody!"
In words which consist originally of only two
letters
when
the last
is
may be
either
doubled or not, as
"how much?"
^ tvaw^ it
is
rel.
'^
or
"^
but
if
always doubled,
asyif,".^-:j.
If the last letter be an
allf^
it is
hemzeh or
who
^
is
obtained, as in
(a proper name),
^^^
JJ^J.
is
",;!.
This
;
as
^3U1^
jjjlj!^
"internal."
irregular
Yery
forms are
f\l "Syrian,"
j2
"of
Yemen."
ABSTRACT NOUN.
(72).
From
the
Noun
tive is
if,
as
theological
148
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
"divinity," "deity,"
c:j.i>i
^zj^
^kingdom
(of heaven)."
THE DIMINUTIVE.
(73).
inserting
(quiescent
t/d) after
initial letter
letter
with
fethaJi^ as J^-j
if the follow
which
the inserted
^j^
is
1-,^^^.
if
l,
plural
'J\
its
^j^
dim.
"small," dim.
"loads," dim.
^jli^;
'S^\
jU-^1;
^UU,
proper
name,
J^^^^ J^j^
such radical
;
is restored,
as cJ^? (for
^;
'
'
4.15 (for
' '
410
weak
"a
fang,"
^1^
a balance,
j^-o^
letter before the inserted 1 of the
^ luaw^
quiescent
is
diminutive
changed to
as
^j\^
aim.
c-^.^-i
Jj^ "a
the
lion," dim.
j^*^;
^-^^.j ^^^'
^^5-
^^^
^^
it
weak
ya
of the diminutive,
becomes
as
f.^
bird," dim.J-ilsi.
THE DlillNUTIVE.
The reason
teristic
149
two
rules
is
and kesrah
may
"When the
letters con-
vowel
-.
is
yd by the
^i^.,.2s:..
In nouns of four
of
-.
which
of the
the third
is
diminutive, as
*--]-::
When
there are
and rejecting
^^.a-!.
the fourth
" quince,"
for
letters are
compensated
by
inserting a
as ^_^}^
but which
or verb,
noun
the diminutive
is
^-.s^;
<__>,k.2^
amtated,
'
ami.
c-j.-..::^.
is
added
to the diminutive,
eye," ^^-^^
jM
house,"
Sji*'^'
In nouns of two
letters
restored
in
the
J^x>j.
'^^A^
"Z,
Ji*
150
for '\a^,
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
unless
tlie
J^,
tli.
In 1^^] "sister,"
is
retained, as
tsJ:,
"daughter," the
its
illL
letters of
which a radical
"a
Cadi,"
J^y
by the foregoing
^^^J^ijjj;
may be
*J-Jl
;
obtained
^j>vj
rules, as ^S^\
ribs,"
eJiJu^i).
Zeids,"
e^^ioc^
Jdmds,'
Broken
ceptible of a
diminutive form
is
this
is
only obtained
nouns
as
AJ^L "poets,"
(from
J<i>);
^^jyi*)^
(from^l);
"Hinds,"
ilS\sx.i,
o^^
"camels," e-jil^?-
(from J/i^).
part
;
of
I
the compound;
tllCbJ
I
"Baalbekk,"
.A^
<u.k>-
'
'
lI^-Lxj
aJJIjoj:
Abd d^-^.
allah,"
^lilj^^;
.a
diminutive.
pronouns occur,
is
IJ
though
rarely,
and their
initial
vowel
always fetliah
"that,"
fern.
instead of dhammah, as
"that," bj;
cbbj;
fem. LJl.
151
THE PRON"OUNS.
(74).
affixed,
The Pronouns
separate
and
PERSONAL PRONOUNS.
1.
The
1st person
2iid
3rd
case.
and
may
;
lose
Ol is
and become
^^j,
^i and
^^!tj, ^^.i
pronounced ana (not and), and is considered in poetry as consisting of two short syllables.
2.
The
"
152
because
it
4rtAEIC
GRAMMAE.
flexions of which,
of short vowels,
person
is
affixed to
it
as ^l::|
etc.
objective),
is
"of
my
book,"
The nun of
particles
precaution
often
which resemble
"that,"
IP
verbs, such as lj\ "verily," ^J\ "but," y.^ "as if," ^Q "perhaps." It is
6^
it
"would
that."
It is also
used
with the particles ^^^, ^^ "from," and J\ "that;" geneWith li or i in the rally with 'JS\ "with," "near."
sense of ''enough,"
may be
used, but
is
more
fre-
quently rejected.
It is not unfrequently
first
employed when
person
is
expressing admiration,
as
^ j^
!
\J^j^^
^*
"
How much
God
CHANGES IN TOWELS,
(76). After a long
4'i;il^^
ETC.,
vowel ^^ becomes
"my
sins."
The pronouns
Jcesrah
when preceded by
to kesrahj as ^'bi,
dhammah
j:^!^
N.B. If a hemzei
pronoun, the
mm
as ^'hJ\ *^J-c
The feminine termination Tbecomes - before the affixed pronoun, as Ij}:4 "writing," l^i^ll^ "her writing."
As
the
addition
of
the
affixed
pronoun serves
to
THE PEESONAL PROXOUXS.
153
make
The
the
noun
definite,
tlie
and the
ij
"his two
books;"
iJ,'-i
"his strikers."
first
With
the
^
/; P- 75).
person singular
for
lJ^^.J^
and
coalesce into ^J
as
Ijj^
(by
Similarly the
mute
is
i^
it."
ACCTTSA.TIVE PEONOUIS'S.
When
" I gave
thee
it,"
the second
may be
b]_
either joined
or written
separately, the
word
hang
it;
thus iM
lL^';^L\
it."
N.B. The
(1)
U]_
can
onl}^
be used
or
(2)
where
an affixed pronoun would immediately follow the pronominal termination of a verb, both referring to the same
person, as
d^ "I was
(3)
he," where
it is
^KA^
<jl^ would bo
preferred; or
sative
where
sake of emphasis,
as jJtj o'ol
we worship."
folis
When
introduced
154.
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
/>
;>0
-'
OS
''I
f ?
9f'-"'
cS
gave you,"
^^.^krl
iy%L-J^:2.z\
"I
it"
"you gave
(^
full
form of the
(78).
The
last rule
bear ia mind, namely, that the prefixes and affixes by which the different
persons of a verb are formed are in reality nominative pronouns
:
the
affixes serve for the preterite, the prefixes for the aorist, the tense itself
being indeclinable
thus
act of
killing " in the preterite
J^
"he
killed"
{^q fethah
Tie).
lU
is
form
<^:Ji:xi
i).
(^Ji^
is
"l
killed"
the pronoun
in the preterite of
act of
is
"he
kills"
(j
J^*
" she
aorist),
and so on.
DEMONSTRATIVE PRONOUNS.
(79).
is
"that," and
is
thus declined
PLURAL.
155
it
seldom used by
itself,
and when
forms a
compound the feminine singular assumes the form ^l or /i at the end, and li or cp at the beginning.
9
"When J J
follows
signifies
it is
fully declinea as
PLUKAL.
Fem.
' ^
-.
DUAL.
Masc.
SINGULAR.
Fem.
9
.
Fem.
f
Masc.
Masc.
"i
M
M
_jJ
Subjective
(_cj
Dependent
MJ
IJ Objective
jects
is
Ul,
^or^!^;
PLURAL.
Masc.
SINGULAR.
Fem.
Fem
Masc.
d/lj
I
Subjective
Dependent
lI/Ij tl>-J
,
and
(Objective
is
interposed, in wliich
is
see p. 15
(3).
coalesce into
156
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
is
declined as
follows
^LURAL.
THE ARTICLE.
""^^^o-"" is sometimes,
157
rarely, declined
[cT*
Fem.
though very
PLURAL.
Maso.
DUAL.
Fem.
C^
SINGULAR.
Mssc.
O X
.:>,
Fem.
Masc.
^O^
Li)""*
o^o
-^
Subjective
o o^ ^
j^/#
Dependent
Objective]
L,
l^ is indeflinable.
\_Note.\^ and
that
is,
its
compounds are
for
also indeclinable;
endings
the
inflexions
regular noun.
this
and the
relatives.
and
\.'',^\
I*,
"-soever," as
first
"whosoever "
The
portion of this
compound
declinable.
THE ARTICLE.
(81).
The
article ^t is indeclinable.
It is used with
1.
2.
nouns
;
to specify
The
The
individual
as
^S^\
species i^jiS\
etc.); ^^lliit
"mankind."
inir
excellence
as
the Prophet).
4.
To make an
name
or sohriquet',
as
"the ploughman.'
as
^wS "the
(idol)
Ashtoreth,"
158
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
of the Eelative pronouns
The use
is
THE mjMERALS.
(82).
159
IGO
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
MASCULINE.
90
100
1.
t..
The word
il,L
"hundred"
is
com-
mon 200
r..
to
both genders.
i^/-o>w
100
<o
300 400
500 600
700
r..
case, as
f..
c
1.. v..
aL't*
{J*^'
4 5,
[tOU*
;>
is
pronounced as
if
written
o.
..<)
iu.^
mi-atun.']
800
A,.
Ou
v,*j
Jlj
900
1000
^..
t...
i\ \
"a thousand"
is
common
to
both genders.
2000
3000
r...
r...
they are
for
Thus
,
4000
5000
f...
iJJ
from 10000
to
6000
7000 8000 9000
T...
is
oblique singular c^ jA ]
V...
A...
^..
ORDIXAL NUMBERS,
161
162
ARABIC GILiMMAR.
MASCULINE.
1G3
(84).
1.
ij^,
once
etc.).
j\j o^
liJ^lj
-J
or
<i'i3lj
i--^
thrice.
And
so on.
"We may
unity, thus
noun of
fjj^ij^
<ijj^ <^ij'^
etc.
2.
The
or JkT*-*^ one
yO ^
,,
by one.
--O
^O
*Uj
jc^*
or (^i>J^
u;:?^^
two by two.
;^
y
^^i
,,
cbj
,,
by
four.
And
so on.
The
sin<?le
..^1^
s i^ p
r->_y*
triple, threefold.
\S^
4.
double, twofold.
And
so on.
The
S _P
^Uj
dual, consisting of
two
^rlj
quadruple, consisting of
four.
^J^
And
so
on
164
6.
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
Fractions are
5 O fc-ji.^ half.
^
.
9 >
'
l^>
'^^J
ti;
etc.
t^J a
fourth,
j >
^he
plural of these
to
fractions is of the
^ *:
^/'
""^''atPTith
form
3Q5
by the use
of
The
the words
^
'^
parts of," as
-g-^tb.
^''^
U^
6.
U^iy^
cJ/ ^LrT'
"^^
are
every third.
7.
as follows
^j
9, as
"The Greeks
Kor.
and
XXX.
1.
^^J "
thousands, as
l^ ]
"
And we
sent
him
to a
PREPOSITIONS.
Similarly el-I3elia Zolieir has
65
therealouts.''*
about,"
jl
J^-^jj
expressions, followed
sense.
used in this
PAETICLES.
(85).
positions, Conjunctions,
PREPOSITIONS.
(86).
The
(i.e.
are
The
namely
inseparable
.
prepositions
are
five
in
number,
t__j
in,
This,
when
9.^9
*-&, U..&,
nouns
>,
see
LU
.
by
by
(a particle of swearing).
(ditto).
to (with
like.
pronouns this
is
The
Jl
166
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
jy
etc.
dent case.
CONJUNCTIONS.
(87).
The
separable.
The
and,
before).
The
J\
COJfJUNCTIONS
AND INTERJECTIONS.
167
Or
I/.
separable, of
c
^ S
,
0=r^
\S\
,
oj ^.
,
or
j^.'w
ever, never.
is
all).
,.,w^l
^1
U1
^1
won't
K
3
certainly not.
no, not.
u],
verily.
J
,
not.
UJ not
yet.
UJ
only.
^1 whether,
tive of
or (alterna-
Us not.
1)
-5^ when?
Jji>
how?
where
?
whether (interrogative).
here.
^1
UJJ>
Jj nay,
rather.
Such adverbs
as
S^^t?
"afterwards,"
(^Cj
"before," which
;
and
indefinite
\Sj1
INTERJECTIONS.
(89).
The
t
\
lal
Uij
ij
ci>
ah! alas!
oh
f\
ho
etc., etc.
great
many
168
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
They
are
all fully
IMITATIVE SOUNDS.
Note.
Imitative
;
by
such are
Used in
calling camels to drink.
^^J>
U>-
Ji
ft.
l!>-
lid hd.
A' d.
sheep
goats
,,
\z Ic
jjli
Ghdki.
Tdki,
jjll?
,,
sound of a blow.
J^
Tak.
stone falling.
169
PART II.-SYNTAX.
the
Preterite, the
I.
THE PEETERITE.
(90).
The
time at which
defined
took place
or
is left
indeterminate, unless
particle.
by the context
act
is
by some
Thus the
may be
when
the speaker
describing
as
God
all
bless the
art saved.
I pardon for
its
sake
Or
the effect
may
still
remain, as
He
God who
believes in
God."
Or
it
may
170
ARABIC GEAMMAE.
^\
"
if
you
rise,
I will rise."
to
be
"
if this
suppo-
risen,
then you
may
/ have
risenJ^
idiom, "if
you do
that,
you are
lost," or
"are a dead
man," are
very
From common
"may God
3
And
you
!
with
or in cui'sing, as "
(91).
t^^b
"may God
not bless
The
"^ with
the preterite of
^li jjj
another verb
'^i
But the
pluperfect
is
preterite preceded
by
the particle
conjunction J.
The
past, as
S-'j
^^^
"^
to
you
before me."
We use
*
we
"no."
for his
told
CX^ i^
p
I
you "
!
-*o
^ ^ ^
171
THE AOEIST.
(92).
Like the
of time,
The Aorist denotes an act not yet completed. somewhat indeterminate in respect until defined by the context or by particles.
preterite, it is
susceptible
of
certain
inflexions'
to
aorist
ends in
used in
all
direct narration.
(93).
The
aorist of a
verb changes
its final
vov*^el -^
when
the verb
is
preceded
by any one
1.
may
^J}
^!
^ "I
"the
wish that I
2. ^J='((^1
= J ^^C
as
"certainly not,"
J-^Ji j^^
miser
will
^^\{
^\ ^p
'
Two
arc identical with the subjective and oband the Arab grammarians give the same name to both. The
,
remaining case, the dependent, has the apocopated form of the aorist for
in
tlie
its
parallel
verbs.
"
172
question
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
/-xo^O
9
O-^
-^
"what if?"
'LA\
J^jJ ^^\
''
tlien
thou shalt
liJI^T
allU
^[
"what
From
if
I believe in
God?"
^^1
,
this it will
is
expressed
or understood,
The
ellipse of
^1,
particles
"to, that,"
^ "in
rfi^J
order,"
^)
_^
"in order
to,"
and
uIj, as
m\ Ci3
^Ji'y
L5
^-"^^^
"l
may
visit
Cjj^}. '^JS
C-^^iij
c^U
^-^^
you"
)
JJ J
or
till
^,.0).
L_s^^^ C/^^^
he repent''
^]
j^).
J-mjIi
j^Jlb
es**)^
"l am
myself."
^Jl
<
>
JLj, cLC>/J^
JSU
Job
"Do
you eat
fish and.
drink milk
(at the
same time)?"
Ci3jblj
^je>.Uj
li
"Do
not punish
me
so that
perish."
,*i*li j^jJ^
gi
<!iJl
Juj Jj&
"is Zeid
at
home, so that I
?
may
go to him
t-
l^
is also
after j^, as
^1
dTjjl
jl
u^v^n
^^u^^ "I
u/,^^
will brave
hardships, or meet
my
fate,"
where ^j^\
is
equi-
valent to
^^CSA J
Jl^
"till that I
meet
my
death;"
173
^yi
its
it sliall
come
^J^^ J
J^
"unless that
it
come
straight."
in such expressions, as
torment the righteous."
^^^JUI
t__>A.tJ c'Ul
.li
"God
will not
of J\ with the aorist in fethah, except in the instances given above, is rare, although it does
The suppression
sometimes occur, as
a
SjissT^ i>j^
t
Tell
him
-Si^-O
^^
"Catch the
thief before
he catch you."
oS
f-0-<3
OxO-O
-C
X ^
X
O^
"
-Ji-O
X y
OxO X x
X
^x''
>
*'*
XX
xl
XX
O
"x
/oi X
believe in
God and
war with
their pro-
I^.B.
fetJiah
tion.
The change
The
aorist of the
verb
is
which can
vowel altogether.
in either one or
two
The
cases in
loses its
the following
174
1.
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
After J "not," and U] ''not yet," wMcli always give
aorist, as
He
_s~l
'
"^^^
^ J "^W"
yet appeared."
2.
IJj
After
tlie particle
J nsed
in an imperative sense, as
Cv^^
\Note.
This
^
all
When
him
preceded by
strike."]
^
c_J,
loses
After
prohibitive, as
^^J
"do not
strike."
(95).
jn*^
^ o
J-wwC'
^
shalt
-^1
e:^^
to
CUlJ'
UJ^
lI^jI
"And
thou,
whenever thou
come
Thou
wilt find
^ "Whosoever."
<!j
JsT Vy^
ti'*''V.
c;'*
Whosoever does
evil,
shall be
recom-
pensed therewith."
The hemzet
it,
el-wasl, with
it
which the
article
;
precede
in order that
may be pronounced
jjioj
is
(see p. 13).
175
U^^ and
aill
" Whatsoever."
UUiJ'
i^Asfj
j^\i
do,
God knoweth
thou shalt
it."
tXs^r c-^Jlij*
SI-
U.-^.'^
seekest,
find.
o"^
"Whichever."
t<
By whichever
ye
call
on Him,
for to
Him
..<w>Jl
\i\
and
o^
-'^
^* "Whenever."
^ o-o
^S
^x
^:.^
^.i
"when
I pat off
my
turban, ye will
know me."
J'.x>
^Jl
iO J<AxJ'
t<
j_^,ljli
"whenever
descends."
the
wind sways
it,
it
\^\
(poetical).
Whenever poverty
patience."
assails you,
have
and J-/*^"
rhyme.]
Ul^,
(.:LJy^^\
jl,
^1 "Wherever."
^'*^.^
(S^j'^i V'^^*
" Wherever ye
you."
are,
CO*
U*^^^
9
\
O ^
-iii.
L/**!;^
^ O
t-i^
Where you
sit,
I will sit."
-i
'
''
O-^^
<0j\
lLsS jiA^.
--^Ji)3kJ'
U.la>.
Where you
success
>>
go,
God
will grant
you
U
K*>-
"However."
i__5^l..2J"
<^ vJ
^"'".s^
However you
good luck."
turn,
you encounter
'
176
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
and ^^ are true particles, the remaining eleven are really nouns implying a condition or hypothesis
jj^
;
they are
'^
all
undeclined, except
^
^^-T,
cuX
with
Ik.^ ,
J,
U=
soever."
U and
the rest
may
or not.
is
after
an indefinite noun
equivalent to the
/*V.^^
cT? ^y.
77
/^
<-^^
^'*
'-^ certain
man went
^^^
\^ ^L^-j
'^^.'.b
'
*^^^ ^*^'
^y ^^ whatever."
The n
the ^ of
U, which
is
J4"J P^O"
not introduced
by one
of the conjunctions J or
uJ,
apocopated, as
"visit
CS^j^\ iAjj
me
THE ENERGETIC
(96).
AISTD
The
is
syllables
^"and
added
to the aorist or
second
first.
They
are used in
affirmation, interrogation,
command, or
prohibition.
The
affirmative
is also
greater
emphasis: as
177
"
We
but
we
"will
which
shall
Ivor.
ii.
139.
"
my
children,
Kor.
if
ii.
126.
j_5'JJi
(5^
it
fS-^-xJ ^,
v^^li
*^
Go down from
both together;
and
there shall
ii.
come
to
you
36.
" Ye
yes,
it
certainty
life."
III.
THE
is
IMrERATIVE.
(97).
The Imperative
it
manner
(p.
as in other languages.
We
30) that
and that
is
employed.
The
prohibitive
is
178
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
furtlior
the
p. 7).
When
is
THE SUBJECTIVE
(99).
CASE.
The following
tive case
The agent
or subject of a verb
j.jJ
tl^ "Zeid
;
struck."
The nominative
as jJj tl^^
by yb
as
*jljj
tf
Jl>;
Zeid
is
standing."
/ yo OS
*Jlj Axi\
Knowledge
" God
is
is
useful."
^J^
y&
diil
The agent
is
The agent
'Amr."
tl^ "Zeid
struck
following cases
1.
179
When When
the agent
is
verb; as ISjJ
3.
\^ji "thou
verb
separated from
the
agent and
^^l
by the word
i\
"except,"
as
(lit.
l^
jjj
i^j^
Amr"
Ij
*'Zeid struck
The agent
"thou
^li
"Zeid stood;"
didst strike,"
affix
tL' is
il/J
"none struck
but thee."
verb
may;
in
answer
reply,
"who
stood?" you
may
1^ "Zeid."
But the agent immediately follows the object and verb when the object is an affixed pronoun and the agent an
expressed noun or separate pronoun, as
tXjJ
i^j-^
^* H
\j\ ^\^
IjjJ <__^J
"No
I."
Similarly,
when
the
tl^
"Zeid's slave
struck
him"
(lit.
= ^P
,
jJJ lii),
in such a case
it is
not
we must not say fjuj '^Jl CJJi because admissible to make the pronoun refer to a noun
:
in other words,
precede
its
antecedent.
is
When
word
^1^,
the agent
by the
the verb, as
cl^ U.
rules
If none of
the
above-mentioned
apply,
you
ISO
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
either put the agent last or not, as
jjj
\j\s.
may
^J^
j.jj
i^ji or
When
<#
by the
particles UJ^ or
^Jj
iro^
y ^
\jA. J^J
^J^^ UJ^
"it
is
only 'Amr
whom
\jA. fs
'Si)
c_jyi? t
But
if
^^^
"it
is
only Zeid
who has
struck
Amr."
t\j; f\
>'j
i,
S^c L^Ji J^ J
"No
of \^\
it
The agent
is
case,
and
is
iX>J
*li'
"Zeid stood."
tt
stood."
^ 4Jojll
i?o^
^
(lis
fy'
jjj
^oiS-*^
*^h
'
"Zeid stands."
^^
Ji>sy)\
A^'sj^
"The two
"
Zeids stand."
j^. jkjjll
>.!;
The Zeids
stand."
181
With
1.
is
what
c^^li
^^Hind stood/*
j^ljc^J^ u:i-^^l5
stood.'*
i^\x^\
2.
<::^^\i
P c
-Ct
c:^s*ll?
^^^1
"the
sun
(it) rose."
either
"^
2. If the
1^
3. If
noun
or the
name
of a
species, as
J^
CJi
'
The
trees
4.
is
"
Hind
stood to-day.''
182
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
the intervening
When
word
is
'i\
the verb
1\^
is
more
4xx&
^li
" there
The names
feminine
of
Arab
tribes,
in the
As
with
is
broken
plural,
when
a second
logically in
e:-^^:!:?"^
gender,
\^Uj Jl^r^^
said," the
verb
IjJli,
which
is
refers to the
agreement
preserved.
may
it,
J^3 -P. y
i^
L5^
J^^^^
y'
^
y y
^^.
9y
^^^
yyy
^.'r^^^
cS.'
LT'JI^ J^9 i
O
ij
yy
(^
9 j'o^-o
y y
y y
J**^,
iJ^
r*^ r^'^J^
C^^'^ uiy^
^^r^
"Oh!
who
Say, pharar
is
in chains, fettered
far
Oh! doves
Such
is
fortune
The reason
that
for
we
are speaking of a
decidedly,
^^
18
we
is
not neces-
mind
we begin by
so,
we
proceed to define
clear that in
further
by naming the
agent.
It is
speaking of a
woman we more
idea in our mind, but that in the case of a merely grammatical feminine, the gender
may come
as
an
after-
thought
hence we say,
IL
]
Another reason
for this
after
the verbs, and for the apparently arbitrary manner in which the verb
is
made
it
or not,
is
that
itself,
the pronominal
native to
as
j^jj
'*\3
it,
remains unchangeable,
Here
is is
word "Zeid"
"she rose
mean) Hind,"
cL^'^is
it.
"Hind"
the
further definition of
l::-,*!!?
on the contrary,
as in the
jj.a^jt,
we
le/jin
gender
is
present to our
verb,
"a
tribe," or a
^.ll^
noun
"birds,"
c:^)b
The
"
184
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
'^:?^^
"I
are eating."
o^'^"'
the birds
" I^or can night o'ershado-w them nor day (protect them)
can their horses or riding camels bear them
nor
away
The names
of
Arab
but
>-'
ox
-^
p^
men and
is
genii;
tribe
revolted
neglected
when
it affords
the
The same
rules
which apply
to the agent of
an
It
is
"Zcid was
by some
"thou wast
intervening word, as
l::.^?
)!^
c-^ U
but thyself."
The
may be
expressed by a
as^H
c-si'-o
JSl
^^
^-^^-r-^
wonder
If the
noun
be,
however, a
"
185
^'j
C^j^*
''Zeid's
If the
as
transitive verb
object,
first
U^J
Ujj ^^J^]
objects
the
of such
of
the
passive
juj ^JaJt
In the Koran the expression ^^Lpl \^^ have received the scripture,"
is
"who
of frequent occurrence,
and
is
^1
being the
4th conj. of
^\ "he
:
came,"
is
accusatives, thus
t__>L(ll
*i>liT
scripture," and
in
the
passive
object,
li,,
becomes the
tive function.
governs by means of that preposition), as J^^ J^ "Zeid was passed by," where "by Zeid" is regarded as the
subject of
2.
(y8)
J.
(a)
An
undefined noun
if
restricted in
noun must be
yet)
declinable, as
-^^ fasted
lo^V
(*
"
Eamadhan."
^U^
(/3)
>-.o
The
"
fast of
U-^jLj
He
marched a march."
" a good Here we may say in the passive, Jll^ 'j^ march was marched," but we cannot say simply ^IJIjJ--^
^^
186
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
witlioiit
So too
l-O
)dl\
we
say,
juj
^^jJ
Jl>-
"he
''
sat
by Zeid," and
glory to God. n)
^^^-5
-^~j
ij-1^
^Usu
-i^.-j,
because neither
^^jJ
clinable.
PASSIVE.
^ ^
-'
V^Jrriyi^^'^^^-t
"God
gave a Scripture to the
Children of Israel."
^t^
^o^
^o5
"Zeid was given a drachma."
"He
to kill
o
'Amr."
^o-^
^ ux
"He
Bagdad
05
^^ y^i-i-o
"He
could
not
he taken (his
mO
a verb which governs with a preposition is put in the passive voice, as ale C^^. " he disputed about it,"
the preposition with
*'
When
its
'dis.
iS^,
im-
it
The verb
is
then
strictly
'
187
is
" The thing (masculine) disputed about. " The thing (feminine) disputed about.
CXc
C_?^>./^1
by no
less a
person than
incorrect
and
\n^ilgar.]
This idiom
is
by which
aboutP
have translated
"The
thing disputed
all
chap.
i.
10
"Guide us
iti
way of those to whom Thou hast whom Thou art angered (of those Thou
angry with)."
JSfote.
Nothing
the
case:
for
example,
^\ "he came"
governs
objective
without
the intervention of a
preposition.
Before
y,
/
1
may sometimes be
X ^o^
t"^
o-^
for
>
"
He
x^o^ cS
^ ^ c
t-x
o^
the
preposition
;
is
as
"
188
,^C-t''->0''
AEABIC GRAMMAR.
.'
t,>'o.<3
C5
^^j.
"He
''CSo-O^
o>'^.^3
X ^
^ -'Ci
destitute
and needy."
fi^^,'-
p^
o--
63p:> for
^ c:.^
"I
"I
thanked him."
^--sil
C^j-^l
objective case
The
2.
3.
the action.
4.
5.
6.
Words expressing the state or condition. Words following particles of exception, vocatives (not
(104).
action
The
that
falls,
as \\{j
oj^
"I
struck Zeid."
A verb
objects, as
U^,j
\jiX^\ " I
eu-l^t
"I showed
to
Zeid 'Amr
The verb
itself is
Ju-^ \ Jc^lM
" The
i.e.
,itJi\
iJk^l
THE OBJECTIVE
{^\j-\
i.e.
CASE.
189
CS\^\
(J-1|
t<
Your
iJS^\
Attend
is
your brother."
The
objective case
ducing a definition, as
Jj^j
(^
lj^"^^
^-'^^^
cr^
""^^ (the
gifts,"
^xx\
2.
^^
i^f:^^
we (I mean
the Arabs).''''
(]0'5).
ing examples
^ O
'
^ Ox x
b
XX cl^l) r^ or
ijL^jJ
,J
C^xOx
...-.'Jj
.J or
.^
if.'jj
'
I struck
him
one blow
<m;o J^oj^'s
blows."
^Jllill
L_J.J
X
''^{k^
"Thou
didst
strike
" "
i'x0-"0 -'xo
/"jJu^
c_>^^i!l
I looked at
one in anger."
xo
tljl JkL?X
Ix/j^OXx
iG'
Li^
l!ry-j
jkL>-
'
I flogged
him three
strokes of a hide
whip."
''i:iJ^
I struck
him a whip"
(for
with a
whip," or
P 9
xxoS
^^y^s\
Oxx
I sat the best of sitting.
y
^w !.:>-
u:-Nl:>O
''X
X i^O-'O-^l
^L^i^iUl
o
-3
c:_?Jots
scjuatting.
-^
-5
J'
^ o
--uJl
Ji^ '^/^
>
X O XO.O
XOX
Oxx
I
^jjt^
o
-Si
tjAxi i^:^j.
X
I
knew some
science.
-o
^'yox X
c5:iJ,-i
2JI lLSj.J
190
remains in
I.e.
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
objective case, as ^^si
[lit.)
tlie
^L
"Welcome!'*
*_fSij^ ci^^AJf
may answer
is
:
\sjj
" Gently"
gently"
to
Zeid,"
i.e.
"act
to
wish well
(lit.
[pray
God
^\ ^Uuo "Glory
^y y ^
tlcU?
<?
to
God!"
is to
{i.e.
4J1
^Uu:
o
^J
p xc-S
.)
O X
U/.j
To hear
obey"
^^
^9
i X
!>
{i.e. is.\b
^J^\ J
U,K-J
J_,*-:1
}.
U^- ^^\
>
LZ-J\
Ox
Thou
art
my
son really."
CyO
'Ox
5"
OX
jl/Ks:'!
C-?^
ClJj-tf Jl)JJ
an
ass's voice."
Jl^^ J
)b)l
"Welcome !"
Z^.
{i.e.
\^ e^j j
(as it
L^l
c:^'),
to
wt re)
thy
3.
(106.)
In the
may be
The
is
not
affected
by a change of
tl^ "Zeid
Amongst the
jS^*"
L^
^-ii-^^
THE OBJECTIVE
^C
PC'-Cl
CASE.
191
'ox
(^
lyt^\
(y,
Lii-v^-s
"l
fasted Friday."
\^
and adverbs of
assembly;"
\jlt^ iljsxi
'-^Vr'
I marched a mile."
place,
when they
u^\'k^'*
when
the place
indeterminate,
as
"
in a place."
But
if
and determined,
used, as
l::-J^jT,
must be
X o X
^^ ^
j^.aI\
t^V
t-i-^-^Jj^
J6J.J1
^- ^.9^ ci^AuL?-
'
-JO-'-'
<
J^
^^
c:^-..!^
o^
p
"I walked
I
all
day."
^o-o
4.
THE
CATTSE
(107).
The cause
put ad-
be indefinite and of
O^ X
liyi. '-^:^i^
9-'
<|J
I fled fearing."
t^y
c-o
c/^x
ujt}U'
^\
1-::-^^,^
"l
beat
my
But
of a
if it
be defined by the
substantive,
./,*JJ
article,
noun
it is
Li^-r^
9
''l
o,
oxx
iy^^
ci^^J!)
"I
192
If
it
ARAEIC GRAMMAR.
he of
tlie
"but in a state
of construction with
it
may be
either
(_J.=^
^-^y**
'-^^'^{y^
"I
fifid
fearing slaughter."
Jiii\ i_Jji:^
"l
fl6<i
^ "with,"
in apposition with the subject of the verb, for the translation would
{&cil.
marched)," which
is
an
uL^/l-ij
U
'OX
"
{i.e.
how
do you
^XOX
^ o5
^
jj j ivT* '^-^^ 3
^-^
'
'
-^^^ ^"^^
"
are explained
by an
5.
ellipse of the
verb
J^lS,
STATE OE CONDITIOIf.
is
riding."
y ^^o-<3 9
U-j^u^ ^yi^\
Ic.***^
^-^^"^j
"l
'
'"^^'^
Jjj
z*!:^
-.;
<?-!
me."
must be a
'
the
STATE OR COXDITION.
193
Emir came alonc^^'' iSp^ altliough rendered grammatically definite by the affixed pronoun, is properl}'- regarded as
,
indefinite in
meaning.
Similarly, a primitive
to express condition, if it
<-il?
to
may be
indefinite, provided it
by some
-^^ accomplished
man came
to
me
riding."
P y y y p
LTs-
y
-^
Ix^w
tJ^j (^^
'--^.Ij
^^^ ^
A
it
verb or a nominal
sentence
may
stand in the
generally
^jjJiJLU
introduced
by the conjunction
came and the sun was
j,
as
%^^
rising
(sell, at
may
^
.
yy
it
^^
^\j
^ sSi^^ JjJ
LJ^ lJ^
5 [:>-
^y
<*^i/ii
him mouth
mouth."
A verb
it
as
if it
bo negative,
to
J*^J
iji'^^
"Zeid came
me
not running."
preterite requires j
^ J^j *\j3-
The
JiJij
Jv5
and
as
'^S^^
13
ji'u ^\1
194
ARABIC GRAMMAE.
eat fish
"do you
(at the
same time),"
the conjunction J requires the following verb to be in the There is in all these cases an subjunctive (see p. 172).
ellipse of
state is
that"
that
eg.
"do you
and your
state is (
= whilst)
The adverbial
the following
\mJ6 S)
fO^
accusative
is
V
9
C.^--
^ o
-3 -<:
^U
'-
'6\ jo:
VJ
Zeid
is
greater than
you
in wealth."
How
good
is
him
for a
horseman."
It is also
measure, as
^y ^
..rJ^
And
also
The syntax
may be summed up
by saying that it is used objectively and adverbially. The following sentence contains an example of each of
the various uses of the objective case:
P^
-f
o--
^ O ^ 0..0 ^ c
5c-c^
-'S^c^
-o 1^
^ ^
''i-
9 o^^
Amr,
& \^ <)JJ
lit.
PREPOSITIONS.
105
CASE.
is
The
genitive case
is
When
which
it
is
said to be
in a state of construction, as
111
^/^
"Zeid's slave
came
to
me."
PREPOSITIONS.
(110).
case are:
c->,
The
prepositions
signifying
1.
Companionship, as
tribe."
"he
carried
it
away."
Correspondence,
for a
is
as
"I
sold the
garment
4.
t_^
dirhem."
certain verbs,
^b
"God
is
a sufficient
witness."
5.
Jlk- i^\
^^
"
God is
not
unjust."
6.
As
a particle of swearing, as
alJlj
" by God."
all
^,
signifying
1.
"Of," or "from," in
the senses
X
'
city."
196
xoj'-o ^
ARABIC gea:vimar.
y
<j
*-o
-^
jjUj^l
cTJ?
w*^j^^ '^rr'^l
Jj
idols.'*
A^
j^x^
(*^'^
ring
(?/
iron."
2.
In comparison, ''than," as
j^j
tir?
^^
"greater
than Zeid."
3.
"Eather than,"
satisfied
as lj^^\
^^
LjaI^ I.?^^'V
^j^
"are
you
4.
with this
life ratlier
"Some of"
-a
(like the
French
"any," as
5Wi
^-:s-
iJL^J^
^^
cLi-xxc (Ja
Have you
ani/
news?"
as ^^\
And by analogy with the preceding, "there came not to me any oney
^ ^f^
J\
"to," "until," as
^Jk^l^
<
W ^\
Jl
L::,-;bj
"l went
to the city."
J^i^l^
L:u^.*Mtf>
When
|1^
in
|j|_
and
in
^jJ
"near" (see
becomes quiescent, as
&^1\
"to him."
ijMKsS\
alH
^^
<:iJ^'.xJ:>
am
God (and
p y
iLj L jji
turned thereby)
away from
all else,"
\^
i^'^.
is
(j-^
c^
L/"!:^!'
"^^
^^^
^y
I'iglit,"
^^.
"from
off,"
^ the "motion
c^wVai-^
^Ic, signifying
1.
"Upon,"
as
^^
S^^
PREPOSITIONS.
p
197
off the
<^y
by
J}^,
as
i^T JI
pronouns, as
^U
is
" on him."
JUll
the property
2.
3.
(belongs) to Zeid."
&zj_^
"At"
(pleonastically),
l^T^
c^^^^
"at Zeid I
struck."
dS "like," as ^1^ ^J "Zeid (is) like the lion." %~ "until" (limiting a continuous relation),
v>
-^
'^
as
^o-iO
<->
^\1^\
" I
slept
yesterday
until
the
morning."
dj and
God."
'
^3ilj
dll^j
by
OTHER "WORDS
TJSED AS PEEPOSITIONS.
(111). cIjJ
"many
"but few."
(Ijj
must begin the sentence, and the noun which it governs must be indefinite and qualified by a subsequent adjective,
as ^LjJ
*j
i J^JJ
(iJj
"
many
is
a generous
it,
man have
in
I met."
Sometimes a pronoun
followinsr
afiixed to
indefinite
word must be
^j
"
case, as l^-j
many
a man."
If the particle
be affixed to
Oj?
it signifies
It
is
is
imd/ehsce
it
but
if
ispionouncedvcry
t'alldhi, as
"
198
IJj
is
ARABIC GEAMMAR.
often omitted after 3, but the
<J.j.-j
noun
still
continues
Jr^j
^^^
its
(many
let
down
curtain of darkness."
jo^, j^ J signifying
Z^jt.*^'! AJ
1.
"Since," as
have not seen him since Friday."
jo^
<)i:iJ^^
"l
2.
jjb l:^j
(a^) jw*
&zj\j t
"l have
not seen
him
'
at all* lately."
Eut
lju^\
since Friday.
i^,
iSi,
and
all
jy and
SiJ,
are used as
meaning respectively "before" and "after," prepositions the length of time by which
;
is
introduced
by
l->, as
"Two
"
i,yy
(^
P9
yi^y JkXJ
^-.:.iilu..'
^^wi-lll
<^^
Two
Many
"Jli
"except,"
3^
"over,"
etc.
accusative
(112).
often the
An
terminations, as
"
" "
199
THE VOCATIVE.
ili^-j Ul.j *lilj
U^^
jJJl
is
:..'
^U
aU^j
is
By God
she
is
not a
How good
weepijig,
and her armour silken attire" (said by an Arab who was told of the
birth of a daughter).
\jS ,J.^^J\j\^jWJ
Proclaim,
The departure
is
to-morrow.'"
THE VOCATIVE.
(113).
The vocative
first, Ij,
particles are
Ij,
S\,
!,
Gt,
ll^,
of
which the
is
They usually
They may be
j^::
understood,
i.e.
as
iJt-^ >^Url
etc.
ti-l^J
Ij
"0
Joseph,"
The vocative
1.
is
When
the noun
in construction, as
it
Ij
aI!^
s^
"Oh
a
'Abdallah!"
Or when
Ulll?
accusative, as L?^
ascendinji;
mountain
2.
e.g..,
When
as
!
it
is
when
a blind
man
says,
^s^
if
'd.>-
somebody
take
my
hand."
But
the noun
qualified
not in
construction, but
is indefinite,
and not
by a sub-
put in the
iemv'n.,
as
it
:vji;
"Oh
i=rj
Zeid!"
"Oh man!"
man
"
!
If,
however,
be
as
so qualified, it is
l^^
^^
"
generous
i;
as
^^
Ij
Oh Moses
!
!"
^\i
Ij
"Oh
"
Oh
Sibawaih
"
"
200
In
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
crj'ing for help, or expressing
wonder,
i^ P'''^"
which
is
>>
jjjj
l)
"Oh
" Oh
me)
^^^
When
is
V.
for the
(what
a)
wonder
expressed by putting
and
"feminine,"
numbers, as
jJ-sliJ
\
\j^\
Oh
'i\
l^A.;!
Oh you woman
is
there
The name
of
God ^i
when
it is,
may
be either retained or
elided, as
cUi\
U ya Hlah.
in addressing the
Deity
with-
APOCOPATION OF THE
LA.ST
vocative
1.
may be
all
apocopated
In
1!?Ij
"Oh!
"
Oh
sheep."
;
provided
Oh
Jaafer."
NOUNS IN CONSTRUCTION.
In proper names like l1^
t^<J^*
201
compounded
the last half
of
may be
apocopated, as ^j^x^
Oh my
!
companion,"
is
An
indefinite
;
noun
or
is
the article Jl
by placing
as
in construction with
The
is,
we have
distinctive
mark
FOUNS IN CONSTPtUCTION.
(IIG).
Of two nouns
following examples
jJjs-Jl j*Li
9
The
The
slave of the
man."
Jj>-j /!.
slave of a
man."
p
-^
Here the
j*li
definite
is
by prefixing the
From
this results the rule that the first of two nouns in a state
article.
202
struction have
ARABIC GRAM3IAR.
come
to
may be
of this ^vorld."
called
The book
"The
life
of animals" (name of a
work on natural
history).
A noun
with
it,
may have
is
as 'i3[^jA\^j
^-r^^
(*4^ ^^B.e
is
present."
of
two nouns
between
indefinite,
and yet
to express the
same
relation
them
as that implied
by
preposition
must be used
Sometimes an indefinite
nouns in a
to
it,
or a
t^AJb
Jk^s'^
**
A victim
4:5-
1\
^^J\
"Mohammed,
handsome
of face."
(117).
A.
sentence or quotation
may occupy
the place
**
The hand
given
of fate gave
to
him
to drink the
cup
of,
drink
boiling
water
Avliich
tore
their
Kor.
If the
xlvii. 17.
first
of
two nouns be a
participial form,
and
'
'
NOUNS IN CONSTRUCTION.
203
^J\
if
it
cljjli
govern
two nouns
"the
already
in
construction,
as
S^y^u^\j
it
4-?)^-^
striker of the
may
The
take the
J^
J^
j>-|^
(_^LiJl.
state of
two nouns in a
it
determines or
defineswill
be
best
examples
<0J1
L^'Ls^
'
The wisdom
of
God/
<Lii
LJl^
An
ess of
silver.
>j&^ .JkH
i^i
The
'^'^^
silver of
dirhems."
^^ ,^ ^*4^
^
(jiu^ijlll
y>-
The heat
of the sun."
^^<1^'\
^jlj^lirr*^
J-^
j^lkLJl '^'J^
-:s^J
\
" The king's treasury." " The king of the land and the sea."
^j^\
jjllii-j
sl/tw^l
C^^
y^<
"
^j^
.^amAjI
^'J^
own
souls."
^IlLjpil
of the treatise."
_jl^
Jj^
j:jLs'*^-ui
: :
204
o
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
^ Jii t-^o-^
"
L)
-*ri.
y o ^
^^U^
di-ciaJ
/^s*^
J-c^
-A.
wom-out
turban.
of philosophers."
<_;LuJ\
?-:lr*'
"Q^ic^ ^
(^^^ reckoning."
have seen that when two nouns are in a state of if it be required construction, the first becomes definite
;
We
to
to
a preposition
must be interposed,
aj3\
as
^\
^ U^j "A
"His mercy."
this
^ 'U^j "A
is
Sometimes
construction
Kais
^^.
j^ j
^^
^}S.
jx
v^i^
.^\^j.\.i\
h2^
"And (many
to travel."
NOUIfS.
(118).
The idea
also expressed in
3J masc.
^y^
fern,
'^\
C^^\^ "companion,"
"son,"
11?^
*y
.i
"father,"
"mother," "^\
or
.^
" daughter,"
" sister."
(i^Tjj "learned,"
205
and
^t
qualified.
^\
"Abu Hurairch"
name
Mohammed).
f^^j jjI
Abu
Pu'ah"
^^
c^^Li:^
\
<^\
Abu Shiah"
i.e.
a sweet-scented
desert herb
name
of a mountain in Sinai).
^\
*,\
sXijs
"Umm
or
*
valley in Sinai).
iJO
^i\^
and
c:--.:^,
'Li\^
\\^
as
jj--^!
^M
^\
ojl
(J-jpl
(a jackal).
l::-^:j
The daughter
of the
^1
and
uL-oi^l
also
<<
^xA\
'-
^\
>>
0-0
jjx]l ^i>\
^ ^i
^1 is also
"this
garment
is
Note.^\\Q complement of ^i
aorist,
may
be a verb in the
as
is rare,
^
P^ o y
jo (^O L JUuJ
yoi>,
Ju'
are preserved,
it
"
20G
ARABIC GEAMMAR.
construction occurs in the following verse
The same
of Ibn el Faridh
1
jljj
i_<,j111
jUi!
Iju-1
iJt
Li>j
^bi ^^
of Shera.*'
Ooo
J-.Ji
1^1^ Jkj
He was
a lion rending
tlie lions
Some words,
noun
in order to complete
In such a sentence
"^i^l ^^i^j"
which
is
an apparent exception,
it is
equivalent to
t^^^
^=-1
J^
(119).
The
first
or second of
two nouns in a
state of
construction
l^li
may be
'^
^^ l)^J (^
-^
hand and
him who
<d:>-
l^li
iX)
<Ui\
-s-lij
"May God
and the
^xO-O X
him
him who
O-O
-Ci
said it."
X X
O-Ci
^^xp
X X
Ox
>'S
fire
kindled by night a
fire (of
*>
xl
^^x
" I saw
X c
^ii
-Sj-o # -Sii-O
X X
-Jjx
*'When
it
(literally,
Mohammed,
son of Kclaon."
"
207
The last
the predicate, as
6jt.i\J\
^^^
L::.-^xkJ
"some
of his fingers
were cut
off."
in construction
may
occasionally be
U^lj' *xil
Jjs>
\^j
Jjol
CI.* 4^ -^-.^-^j
S'IaI^
^1
God!) of
4_$'Jjj
its master.''
U.J
(121).
The
a
objective
complement
is
frequently inter-
when
noun of
action, as
many
should
^><:n ^l-J^
^^ cJy.
com which
nouns, as
Oh
him
to
whom
it
its
possession is
!
lawful.
It
is
forbidden
me
Oh would
that
But
208
ARABIC GEAMMAR.
noun be
must
also
be
definite, as
^^\^\:^\
^j^1>\ ^"^ji^
"The
faithful
Abraham."
If the
noun be in a
state of construction
with another
is
also
A-^^
Li**'^'*
'-r^''"-^
A,^^\ P
iJ\::^
But
if
indefinite,
book."
The
rules for
number
are the
and verb.
may
take the
Devouring
lions.
*-'r^'J
UT^
(
Firm mountains.
Slender sharp swords.
c:.JUib-^
jj-*o
cUiJ.Jut^ /ui
Numbered
days.
collective
noun may be
qualified
by an
epithet- in
''aid us
Sometimes a noun of
is
action,
instead of an
used as a qualifying
THE NmiEEALS.
epithet, as
209
3^
but
"justice," instead of
^Al
''just ;" it
then
and preserves
its
own
fjSs:.
gender, as
Cp^-j
a just
"
man.
J Jcr ^^j
U"^
u^J
men."
An example
\)ij\^ <^l:;jli
Koran
''^'^.
^ ^J'^
Kor.
\J' ^.J
(^^*^
Ibn Malik in
number and
THE NUMERALS.
CONSTETTCTION' OF
(124).
used as an
i]/].
one man,"
i^J^'j
one
woman."
Ok^l,
fem. tJJ^S.)
i^
is
therej^js-I
fore
employed in a
of the
"one
men," sl^l
"one
of the
women."
is
used, as
14
210
ARABIC GEAMilAR.
Tloo is expressed
of the
noun
J^l^
may
be used as well, as
two men."
The use
J^^
(l)
liuj
''two colocynth
gourds,"
is
From
and
JU-
^j^Jj
ci^lij c_U.1j
"three girls;" or
(2)
they
may be
regarded as adjectival,
and placed
yj^Ad>~ c:.'*l^j
after
'^^
^ "he had
daughters."
accusative, as
Very
\>\^\
From one
to ten tlie
is
should be introduced, as
'ijt.ij\
"four birds"
kjb^^
{i.e.
From 11
struction
19 the numerals
are,
as
we have
seen,
From 11
to
Where
always
there
is
agree
The
thin
THE NUMERALS.
211
^^''^^^
of Nasir's coinage."
In the
first
implied.
We
place
may
use
all
them
twenty
given in
108.
case
[In this
clinable numerals
-^
e.g.
.
^ ^
?.
^ o ^
-'
<<
* ^ " ~ 1 jtXt^'
au*,u*>ri.
''y
^i^JSi
fifteen
(camels).
y y y y
.
CSjUts.
kISJLs.
Take your
fifteen (camels).
i:^M*j'^s>.
kiil
fifteen (camels).
Some few
cUw*^
^Lu.4.^
<,
Dependent
Objective
.Aj
y ^ y
.Jlt-s-
^ o /
<U.u*^].
^U,
is
^'100,"
is
a feminine noun.
it
to the rule
on
p.
158.
i-jU,
may,
moreover, coalesce. " 1000," is a masculine noun, and with the units (Jjijt,
follows the ordinary rule (p. 158) for the case of the
thing numbered.
^U
and
i-!cJi,
212
ARAEIC GEAMJIAE.
^-
iS-
-^
'Between the Hijrah and the Deluge there are 3974 years."
Here
is in
(-J^Jl is
with
is
(^j^-^^^j
HjU
From
this it will
last
numeral
ujiJl,
1000," must
numbered
is also so
repeated, as
-s?
/
its
As
amount of
revenue
is
two
also
be employed as adjec-
noun, as
He drew
hundred and
it
was
THE NU^TERALS.
213
This
is
when
is
understood, as jJj!
^
^
The
is
9
(^
logical
agreement
is to
it
'^
y yy
-Gis.
<^
w^
yy
So
my
Was
three persons
Here, although
^^^
^^^--0
is
the plural
the numeral
4^i:-^l
-Ij'^j,
is
{^,a^^\
ti_jl!)j,
not
as
WO might have
With
p.
collective nouns,
the numeral
^^
'^.j^
'Four sheep."
" Three ducks."
kJI
^ ^ ^
9,9,
C-J^JJ
And
this holds
feminine, as
Lijul^ ^x!l\
Axjjl
'Four sheep
females."
jj^t) kJ^
C-J^j
"Three ducks
c-*ljj_,
mules."
epithet,
If the words
j^j and
or
any similar
: :
214
ARABIC GEAMMAR.
But in proper
grammatical
is
ment
gender
may
be, as
P ^oi
Cl>LijjJ\ jjl
"
The
always used, as
"three
is
half six."
N.B. The
article is here
used
e.g. ''the
noun
is
When
From
3 to 5 the
number of each species must be separately expressed From 6 to 10 the numeral agrees in gender with the noun immediately following it, as
^Ul
iX*cl
<^^\
^3U3 ^J "l
,
^U^
JUj J "l
,
From 11 19
they come, as
^y
y y
-^ (^
the numeral
what order
i^
hXp^t
\s*^
1iA-
.A
iLu./.:>-
^'^^
o
^ i^ y y ^y
irrational
beings the
numeral
it
yy ^ yy
i^
Ailj
L*5>-
,A
^*A/*^
^^/--'ci.
THE NUMERALS.
215
And when
^ ^^ ^ ^
'O^
^
^ o ^
^l)
^ J.'iJ^
(^ ^^
l^ ijlLz ^^^'^rL
o Axe
o
" I have
fifteen camels,
male and
female.
>-
y ^ yt^y
y yy
Li
^y
J.'*.^_j 'tjlj
t* i^-l ^jo*^^
^Ai^
and male."
the
use of the
article,
the
numerals
yy
may be
y
9
<^
"^
-*o
y y yy
-.Ju
^yt.^\ j-^rJ
And
The prime of
life is
the age
when man
is
stationary,
between thirty
and forty."
In the
last
example the
article is
used to generalize
The rules
JU-j ^1j
"three men,"
is
therefore
by the
we
JI^TlLO y y
"^
"the men's
regarded at
so, too,
last as
may
take the
article,
may
noun,
e.g.
IjUj
216
the
article, L^^^^Lll
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
p -uJ-o ^ ^^-^
>-
-$
cepts of the
law;"
GllTi-Qi "the
life
of this world,"
p. 102).
scilicet^ ^\]liQh. is
so frequently
mentioned (see
those
them
is
that in
to
The only thing remarkable about the compound numerals the article may
first
be added
only, as
tf^^O
^^X^xOx c*
^_
,,
" The
fifteen dirhems."
'
The
fifteen she-camels."
article, as in
JUt)
f--jiJ\
The
ordinal
as agents or
The
Those
for
both genders.
'
217
etc.,
One
One
of two.
ixij\ _jlj
of four.
Similarly, for
"he makes a
fifth,"
they say,
"he
is
the
fifth of four."
is
noun or a
!^^,,^
,,\
"
He makes
a fifth."
DATES.
(128). In dates the cardinal
fol-
dll)
is units,
tens,
^UiJj
>
,.,^^M^
Liux-j
''^J.j
word
i^5;-i
,^ i^J^
'
c;'^^
But
if
employed
e.g.
;_^^
(j^
UAr^
-J
ciT?*^^^
"
month Eejob."
The day of the month is expressed either in the same manner as with us, counting from the first day, or according to the following system
218
X
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
-^
^O^-
^'t
s>-j
^ ^
03?
w^^
''
'
\
)
r
1
"0^
the
now moon
or the
1st
Rojeb
^5>-j iyj or
^ ^
y<i,9
J^^
^s^-'o y
_-c>-i * -c or
-^ '^
J.^:iA*^
blaze
forehead).
O ^
'^
O^^O^
^
2nd
3rd
to
10th
JUJ
nth
r;
|oy^<
eleven nights of Eejeb
(j"^ l::^Ic^
S^-i*.^
i^^^^
^^o.<3
'
On
y-y'O
O^x ''^O^O
being passed.
12th
y y
(^
13th
14th
O.M'.O
15th
'x
o
o
'^
4^
f^
y ^
yUs-
16th
^Ac
r-^,j^
On
fourteen
nights
re-
to
maining of Eejeb."
_.luUj
19th
-r^>'
c;
,*'
U^>o^
y y ^
^.A.u
J"
Kj
20th
to
27th
>7
>
"
-y
.^-r
JUJ
"
..^
PROPER NAMES.
X 28tli
*^
219
^^ ^
t,^^^^
Eejeb
^r^J
c^*
^^
c;rr^^^
X ^ c
.5-^
s -^
^Z
On
tho
last
night
of
30tli
-^^jcr?J*?'^J^~'Olr'o!/^ '
^
or
!*
Reieb."
PROPER NAMES.
(129). Proper
or
\\
'
Zeid;"
Compound,
as
'Abd'allah."
(130).
and
and
and being
is
tenw'in^
article, as
9 9
P
~-'
i-jy ^ U.<J4J
Joseph came."
1
d-uij
i_jL;-.J
''-^Jj^
I passed
[But Arabic nouns employed as proper names, and having an intelligible meaning, as wvlir* "laudable," are
regularly declined.]
COMPOUND PROPER NAMES.
(131).
1.
Composed of a sentence,
LjU
"He
took an
name
of a celebrated
Arab
To
this
class
are
also referred
such names as
j^.'i>
220
''Yezid,"
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
or^^ "Shammar,"
\^
LjIj s\-9>
Taabbata-Sharran came.*
I saw Taabbata-Sharran."
\jL LjIij
c1-J;^.
"I
passed by Taabbata-Sharran."
2.
Compounded
of
Of
these the
first
portion
is
in the nominative,
and
in the
and oblique, as
cLCIxj
i^
" This
is
Baalbekk."
lLXJjo '^z^}j
tliLl-x^j ''^J/^
^ passed by Baalbekk."
But
if
the
first
portion of the
word end in
^^ , it
remains
God); in
first
portion
is
governed by the
first,
is
case, thus
aJll Jui ^U^ ^ 9 oS ^ -o ^^ o X
"'Abdallah came."
I saw
ij!\\
l-o
Ju
Ox
,\*xi
l::-^j^i
9
Abdallah."
ox ^
^\
Cl^jj^
"
I passed
by 'Abdullah."
PROPER NAMES.
221
In forming the dual and plural of proper names composed of the words
Jj\^
or
l::-Jj
as in the generic
is
name
of
only the
first
portion
capable of receiving
the inflexion, as
MASC.
FEM.
Singular
^.ftl
J|
a jackal.
Plural
ojl ciJUJ.
2.^
^\
names
may make
allahs,"
their
plurals in the
;
'iSi!:^\
aLljL-tjl
Abd-
Mohammed.
(132). Proper
1.
names
of
men
The w^ Name,
^^J
as aJI
''Zeid;"
the
^11
or
Title, as j^jj^jU-M
worshippers)
is
and
3.
the
dI-1
or Familiar
tl^t
Name, which
or
'A
''father,"
"mother,"
as^^t
(first
born).
When
the
Name and
come
together, the
-v^
name
"Zcid 'camels
Name and
Familiar
Name come
"'Omar
Abubekr," or^^ ;^ jjt "Abubekr *Omar;" and when all three come together, they may be arranged in any
order whatever.
single words, they
When
may
the
name and
title
are both
222
they
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
may be
placed in construction,
S
^
asj^
Kurz came."
S<^9
^'
y
^9
''
Safd
Eurz came."
of-'
9 oS^
"^^.9
''
^y-
is
com-
^^JjU)^
^j^J
Jk-x
^U- "Abdallah
^^jjUll ^^j
^1
j- i"^.!^
"l saw
^JoUl\
^J
tX*x^ ^Ij^
.^>
..
JjUII
^^^J
"^-^
'"H'l/^
"^
NOTINS
THE
TTSE
(133).
As
noun
as
may
jA^\
govern
jjj
another
noun
in
i^jL ^^
'-^^?'^
"I wonder
it
at Zeid's drinking
the wine."
When
wine,"
.4^1 c-j-i
i.e.
^^
^^^-r^'^
"I wondered
at its
being drunk.
is
When
separated from
its
com-
223
is
(**'^>
^\x^\
Similarly,
when
the
noun ^^
of action
is
defined
by the
from
J-^^
desist
Nouns which
in
may
meaning
to the
as
IcljJl
i^\^\ L^5ll2
grazing at large.
^^
*^A^
jk*j
c:-J/Jl
iJj Jow
/|XJ
-y
CS^ljJLxi
y
By thy
will be
f y'O y
1^
?i^
ifju
^J.
<i/.r-i
ij
I
The remembrance
his servant."
f'y(^y
my
y y
lord's
mercy
to
y<i-JS
yi^-api^y
The
And
vice versdj
may be
put
in the genitive, as
He
^
y
him
or writing
him
as
my
^^
lord
and master
"
!
'
yy^^^
Ox.^3
'-r^.-^r'
^
\^ jj|^
clh:ij\
1^
->
^^
9
who
y
-i,
y-ii
it
-"
^^:J1
15^*'^
^:^^^=*-
"My
love for
him taught me
piety."
224
AEABIC GRAMMAE.
constructions are found with the nouns of
The same
Verily
tlie
people
were
shocked
at
by means
of a
similar
don
This
is
verbs, as ,^lkiLJ^
^ ^jj^
Sultan."
And
if
is itself
struction with a
the
Jc^-sr^ <^,*-si
AtJ
,lli:i!'l
Mohammed's waiting
Friday.
for
Amr
on
Note.
that,
It will
when
may be
noun
expressed
by
placing
it
of action.
When
with
undefined, especially in
it
when
is
in construction
frequently takes
its
objective com-
plement with J, as
^^aKsr
\^\jS\
"To
\^S\
The
sun's
warming the
is
earth."
fi-cquently repre-
225
y,
J3
or
by the
preterite with
U,
as
fast is better for
j^
L^^^" ^\
::^ Vt \jJj
you."
THE
TJSE
(134).
case if
it
in the objective
1
"this
Zeid."
is
(a
man who)
if it
is
Or
be negative or interrogative, as
^-^l*
\y^s. Joj
'
Zeid
is
not striking
Amr."
Amr?"
in the usual
j^jj
If
it
it
must be put
l_^U
Ui>
"this
(is
the
man who)
struck Zeid."
The pronoun ^^
when
sometimes joined to the agent jI^ ''^\ Ja " do you believe me ?"
as
vi
Ji-OCOy'
" (There
is)
me with
more
fear for
-5^
'
\jAS.
^^j*o
He who
thrashes
Amr/
<U^ *y^
'
15
226
(136).
AEABIC GRAililAR.
thus, just as
j>jj
<-^
"Zeid,
his slave
beaten," so also you say, ^ii C'jtr^* ^J " Zeid ; whose slave is beaten " construed with the genitive, as
is
<uii:
'-T^jr^
^jj
^^
would mean
slave."
complement in
but in the
its temvin^
^ may
be dropped.
noun
gender,
number and
f y'oS-^iTl"'
noun
qualified
by
it,
as
J^i^^
J^iJ\
Si\
" Zeid
Jiiib
"Hind
is
^Jiii
Ll^''^J-JiJ
\
are the
most accomplished."
"The Hinds
If
it is
to
be used as a comparative,
S^^
^')
it
O
llT^
9 '^Oi
r^
O^
*-^^
9 y^s~
"^^^'^ ^^
,Y*
j^j
,^\j^\
J-^^
J^
"Hind
"
-^^^
is
(^
(J^J^
U^^J^
*^ ^ ^^ ^ accomplished than
the two
ffluJ
i
women."
^^
J-ii^
J^-J^
"
^^^ ^"^^
women."
It
may be
followed
by an undefined noun
in a state
227
it
remains
masculine singular, as
9
ijs!^j
aS\
kXJ
Zeid
iC
is
a most generous
man."
'i\jy*\
J"*-^^
>^--^
Hind
is
But
its
if it
state of
of construction with
it
may
noun, as
''^
'
-'
or
..
:^V^%
.'"'^t
or
The Hinds
(
((
II..
It
01 (the)
women.
'
The
first
construction
is
as
llli^ J.riJ
'
ZJ^\
la>
"he
also
J
as
as
auvoij
^^
a.IJ
^^\ ^,^>^^\
"the
himself,"
;:;^
other.
etc.,
take
i\\o
S:^ j.^
b lJ/:! Ul
them
228
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
"He
is
more abstinent
from
sin,
God.
rise
an
elliptical
form of expression, as
I
L^\^ ^i,*
^j^
him;" where
^^\ ^^
is for
^j
which
c;rr^
L5^
'^:?
J^
^'^>'
^^^.b
... ^
0''*^'
enemies."
tiy
'
"He
left us,
qualities
may govern
they are regarded. Thus we may express in Arabic the idea of " the man handsome of face," in any of the following manners
1.
^^"^
J ^\ J-J^
-
y -'O-O
9 Zi
if
is
229
considered as
tlie
is
handsome;"
or if pointed with
"who
is
handsome
as to the face."]
2.
<Lj1 '^
'^-^ or
^^^j
U:^
^^^
^,
ti;:^*
or
^^.:>"i,
face,
whose
is
face is
face
handsome."
-^
>.
>
'J
s ^ '
A man
In (l) we
handsome of
face," etc.
may
J^r^i^
which
is
expression formed
The
genitive
it
is
examples, as
would
last
word,
which
is
^^
(j*A=9-
iJ^J
i'*
^
^f
<^5^
'
-^
me."
c^-jl
S^:?^^ ^-w*>-
J>^
fJ
'-^
I passed by a of face."
man handsome
P O
^O-O
''
^'-^
i^?^^\
^i,^t
lu**!*-
ilp-t ^-^^rllj
-^
^^^ ^
face."
"^'^^
handsome of
230
ARABIC GRAMilAH.
"
^-^^^
9 9
t^
ij"-^-^
(J^V;^
Li"^^^^
9
-^^^
^^ handsome
me."
of face
came
to
y
o~o
\
9 -Oi-O
i^^y
c^:p-j
i^.*^
^ ^ y
iJ^^yV
y
9 -a
'^^Jr'*
^ passed by the
of face."
man handsome
i
f p<j ^
<^-a ^
^
-o
os^
^=rj
jj**^^
of
When
adjectival,
"fair of face"
is
expressed
by the ordinary
is
state of construction,
the
ejtithet
"fair"
of course
it
is
an
attribute, as
^:>-
! \
^^yMS>- J-:^
rJ
'~~1J/'*
"*
^^^'' "^f
face."
lk:^i;^\ i:,M*s>-
'i'^j^\
l::.^;!
^_^
saw a -woman
to
fair of face."
o ^o-o y y y
d^^
l:.*ur>-
i^^^j
^J^l:>-
There came
of face."
.^ i^ y l^:>-j
And
similarly
is
used, as
(^AuTsJ.>^^ *~{/!/^ ^'^-J y ^ ^ f^ y ^y y y ^ ^o-.^ 9 o5^
',
'-^
L.:>-j cUAyj>-
iX^l *-^.\;
y
9
'
I saw a
woman
to
99
fair in face."
^o^
k'^^
yy y
_^y
There came
me two men
L,
fair in face."
But
y
,
o ^
c'.^^-^
a:>-j,
etc
being
^^J*'*^>
case, as
J"^ r? ^^^jr^
l^j^i\> y
I passed by a
man
fair of face."
Uf?-j ^.A^si^
"-^jf
P
i^y
*'l passed
by a vroraan
fair of face."
9 P
^^ ^
A.^^j
i'^^:>-
J^^^
i^'^-u.jj
<>
"
^^^Jj^
CL.%.-*
-'-
P^^^^^i
by Dien
fair of face."
^^li-. |^^s-
" I passed by
women
fair of
appearance."
yy
231
^ly
i<-^r^
"^j
'^^ll;
sick.
tOUli
^^
^-^ib
slaves
were
sick.
^^1^ J>-j} ^^jy " I passed by a man whose father was handsome," it will be necessary to change
sion as V^\
i.<^
^t^>-\
ij^t
J^
^^jy*
passed by a
than he."
by a negative statement, and the subject is distinct from, the noun qualified, the adjective may assume the comparative form, a3
0-'
o^
9<j
O^^o-O
\
o^
.^
i^
% (
''
G?^
Jo
^-.
|J
cw*
(J.S
&^^
^^***^^ ^_^i
-^lb
^
it is
"l have
never seen a
man
with
kohP
in his eye
handsomer than
in Zeid's eye.'
But
*'I
there
must be two
an ex^-^iL'
pression,
^'^:>-\
a:>-j
^*
man whose
father is
handsomer
the
is
made
is
qualified
by the
adjective.
il.^
In such a case
^::--j[;
u.
meaning of
verbs.
in
themselves the
A past
1
j.u-i)
" There
is
a difference
between"
= cj^,'
eyelids.
Powdered antimony with which the Orientals blacken the edge of the
"
232
ARABIC GEAMilAR.
or deprecative sense, as
A precative
c:^CA
^*.^T
"Away with"
"Amen!"
>^
" Be
it
remote."
An
aorist sense, as
if or ijt
"Alas!"
= =
t^-^*^
"lam
in pain."
^; "Oh!"
^\
<j^J^\
cy!^l
"I wonder."
An
<ltf
imperative sense, as
or
<U
Silence!"
^1^1^
C\j^j
= "Gently with...." =
"Look sharp!"
last
^^^1 "Delay
Sometimes, as in the
example, tliey
j^^
gently
Amr;"
when
or they
may be
complement, as
jojj,
"=
it is
considered as an imperative,
may
also
followed
by the
accusative, as
f^
^^-V.a;
you !"
i\-;)Il
lion
3.
eases, as
lS^
Take care
Begone!
of Zfid
]JJj
VJl. ^-'.
^ii I5^"
OTHEE WORDS WHICH ARE COGNATE TO VERBS.
All the above are
there
is,
233
irregular
in their
terminations
however,
one form
namely i\^j as
J^J "Comedown!"
c-jI:;^
Jj-jl-
Write away!"
e^-iL
may
govern.
"When they
and I
final
are followed
by
Note.
Some
of these
indefinite
temvm are
definite:
thus, X^
means "preserve
Li.Jli\
;
silence in
this particular
instance," lL^CJI
but
means
"be
^CJ\.
their cases,
when ih^j
understood, as
Jt
cl^JcLi t
You have no
property
lit.
property
jljJl
-s
(_o>
But
this
may
also be explained
p. 236).
by the
234
ARABIC GnAMMATl,
proposition
consists
of a
subject
and an
attribute or predicate,
The word
^'Z^" is used.
express-
is
If simple existence
is
sij
verb,
it is
consisting of a subject
''^j
Zeid
or minor,
proposition, as ai}
llj,
It
jjj
may
be
<uic
a.j^
"Zeid,
going away."
included a verb, as j^^j ^'he runs," where the pronominal agent is implied, see
(142).
clause (in
is
which
p.
154)
may
it
which case
may be
it,
without
occur after
u^/
'-^
*'
i
r*
I passed a
man
praying," where
thet of
If
it
j^L::^ is
Jj>-j
J-if'j
%j
A^
; ,
PARTS OF A SENTENCE.
235
it is
The
aorist
indicativ^e,
*u ^J^
''^
(JIl5^^
came
to
a fountain of water to
consisting
of or
drink."
If the
minor clause,
con-
noun,
it
may
s
^ y
>
adverb, as
^
o^oS
iUjJl
This
is
we have
revealed."
1^U-j1
ass
{Jit.
In the
first
is
regarded
and
;
or as adverbial of condition
This
.lis-
is
not a
157
(81),
and
is
considered to be general
and in a manner
examples of
indefinite.
The Arabic grammarians give a great many other clauses, which, by standing in the position
of an inflected noun,
may
similar constructions.
The
principle
236
a sentence, and
it
ARABIC GEAMMAH.
will be seen that the following rules
it.
The predicate
If both
is
jective case.
2.
subject
definite, it
is
pronoun
for the
masc. sing.,
*j&
masc. pL,
etc.,
which serves
/j-iUl
ijsM
\
&
cdSl
'
God
is
the living
the self-subsistent."
^^:^f^
>J& cL^ji!jl
first
or
used to
lil
God."
The
subject in Arabic
is
equivalent to what
some-
is
afterwards affirmed
concerning
it,
as
PREDICATE.
ox,'
l::^*!);'
uJ
II
jj.-.,*^
The sun
it
rose."
^XaiT
l::^^!^
'Hhe
with
its
agent,
may may
quent predicate.
The
subject
SJ
\)
<Ji;li^
^*^
away."
The
"Zeid
predicate
(is)
may be
'
237
IjU Sjj
standing;" or a pseudo-sentence,
(is)
asj\jJI
^^^\ lLSS^
it
Sjj
"Zeid
may
"Zcid
consist
(is)
1^ jjj
lawyer, a poet."
is
is
pU
jjj
"Zeid(is)
standing."
is
a verb,
as
in the sentence
no
pronominal
ter-
mination cb
is
is
regarded as complete
see p.
;
154
(78).
The
but in the
following cases
1.
may be
indefinite
noun with a
preposition (in
is
complete), as
a book."
ju-JuS
I have (with
me
(is)
is)
tjs>-j j\ji\
In the house
man."
particle, as
2. If it follows
j\j,]\
an interrogative or negative
Is there a youth in the
^
LJ
J-ii
house?"
J^ U
"
We
have no friend"
{lit.
no friend
is to us).
3. If it
jS
it,
as
,i
^*
j^
it
man
is
4.
If
If
it
is
^^ Zlj "a longing for goodness is good." in construction with another indefinite
i'jllc.
noun, as
^^-i)
t-iJl
^j^
^^
lA^ Jj^
"An
hour's
238
6.
AEABIC GEAMMAR.
j^l^
If
it
"peace (be)
upon you."
[It
will be
indefinite,
but
it
may be
"this'(is)
\ssb
is
omitted, as
!
^^\
l>j i^ "were it After i^ "were not," as \J*1 'Amr would have perished" {i.e. had not
etc.).
c3^
When
it
L^U
o^
my
f^ "were
may
pronouns, as iSp,
^ip,
(-li'iy
;
etc.
for
^^^,
"with," as
man
4.
Jj^J 3^ "every man and his own trade," i.e. "every and his own trade should be found together" {ne
When
it
is
^\.xii
Cjj^
239
"by your
life (I
life
i.e.
"by your
swear)."
it
5.
When
is
an
infinitive or verbal
noun serving
i.e.
instead of a verb, as
J^'^'^ "good
may
patience,"
"good
The
subject
rogation, in
Jj.VjjTIj^''^'*
is
not required, as
Here
the word
JU
this case
is
noun in
it
is
mentioned
first
in the scutenco
The
and
same
;
as those for
p.
235 (143).
and follow the subject, it agrees with the subject in gender and number, unless it be an irregular plural, in
which case
it is
t/^
'-'9
^^S
' ^
^J^^y*
Sy
^
9 9 9^-^^
^
i\y\ ^li
9 '^<Z
^
^o^
i^lj ^y^J^ J
^y^
L?'*^
may
see."
Eut
if it
rogative sentences,
240
AEABIC GRAMMAR,
two men coming in?"
going out."
^J^^)^ J^^^^
-^^^ the
Jls^^ TTj^
If the subject
plural, as ^j^}j
is
'^
may
be
Ji
all
are obedient to
Him."
it
agrees in
it
were, by anticipation, as
sio-ns."
cubl
.
CJ^ ^
but
I
as,
When
naturally begins
particle,
the discourse,
for
instance,
an interrogative
j^jj\
i.r-o\
(t
"
Who
(is)
in the
house?"
you?"
2.
When
its
it
;
consists of
an adverb or of a preposition
the subject
^^^^ wealth.*'
(is)
with
noun
and when
is
undefined, as
JU
When
c/t^
-'-
ti\y\ j\j!i\
In the house
woman."
3.
it
is
its
owner"
(the master
4.
is
at home).
is restricted
When
the subject
l[j
in
meaning by the
particles C*j} or
as
Ziid only
'
is
in the house."
^ -^
-'
g.\2\
SI
J^*-^^
ici-!i
The
his message."
precede
the subject, as
ing
is Zeid).
6.
definite
or
if,
."
J-iil
More
The
subject
may
it is,
indicates plainly
what
JjM
i.e.
c->Ul
The
" This
first
chapter."
Jj^^ S-'V^^
^^
is
the
first
chapter."
^ C*
^
r^<
Or
iJL-ol
Jil^
"how
ill."
in furm
and meaning
The
abstract verbs.
2.
3.
Approximate verbs.
Verbs denoting a mental process
4. 5.
6.
Negative
212
AEABIC
GRAMMAR
1.
ABSTRACT VERBS.
(150).
j^o
jUtf>
The
was.
He
He
became.
^**1
J^J t*
He
ceased not.
^^^^
rA-jl
He was or did
dawn.
something at
ly U He
_xaj
\
He
^s**l
at
(^
something in
U*
He
relinquished not.
<Jb
He was or did
^IJ
Whilst he remained.
He
is not.
^l
."
They
Uo
IJ
,lf
"Zeid was
is
generous," and
not liked."
\_Note.
\y^* ^^4-^
u**^
"^^
ignorant person
phase of
existence,
is
Now,
always used
condition, see p.
case.
is
In the simple sentence J^i J^J you merely mention the subject,
affirm of
and then
mttn";
him
that he
is,
generally speaking,
a generous
you
affirm
Of
these verbs
^^13
and
^^
U
cLXj
\\j
"be generous
to
ABSTRACT VERBS.
[The abstract verbs can never be preceded by
for instance,
243
their predicate;
wV",
as,
we must
'
i
JlJ l^ or
Jj
U.j
noun which
is its
subject, as
The
others, as ^li
and the
^,i
like,
may be
used in the
i
L-^f ^jJ
"do
j^y generally takes the preposition j with cate, as Jibls^: J'?J \j^ "Zeid is not a fooL"
with regard
to the order of the
its
predi-
as
its
178 (99)
and
240(147).
abstract verbs
The
verbs,
may be employed
like ordinary
dis-
"The
affair
was
{i.e.
took place)."
^j^^ -4^^
Amr
"What took place from our act and deed took place
and God
is
In
some
cases
c.'! <-'^^
^l^
^^
need
'^
not
be
is
expressed,
as
^^
^'"^ c;l 3
it
^-
"What
said is said,
"j
\
whether
are for
Ll-
''.1
The noun
^
frequently cmand
is
JWs
an abbreviation
-kj
it,"
equivalent to
244
ARABIC GEAMMAR.
itself,
ment
as
thy being strong and others
o^ /
lL.x*i Ll^-.i
^f i
\^
"--^^y^
"From
weak."
The agent
of the
a prophet
earth."
2.
APPROXIMATE VERBS.
are of three kinds.
(151).
1.
jIs
(IJ^
"
^^,
(J^^^l
" probably he
lljt,
."
. . .
Expressing
its
commencement, as
^p^,
J-'r>
^iLc,
These
y o.<3 ^
\
kJiw
jli-S (jw
jl^ "
fell
"
C^
^.) LS*'^
iXjJ
A.(:;j
Jjwf-
and
uliCijI
which have an
aorist, as Sij^ 9 5
uJ^y.
.
They
must precede the noun, and the noun must precede the
predicate.
APPROXIMATE VERBS.
245
^^ and
tlie
particle
With
ol^ it is
generally omitted
but
it
is
^J1>.
mencement.
1.
^-I^,
CS^L^ and
ic***^
^Jl^l^l
may be
used impersonall}", as
You may
gjU
^^^
Ciw.t
He may
2.
i^luc
may be preceded by
it
its
noun, and
or not, as
may
either
agree with
y
in
O i
/'--
So^
"^.{i
*Jij
eJ^
L_s***'^
or
i^
"i-
^^
>
Perhaiis the
O**)^
P-'
oS
or
yy
9<^^ y
may
stand up.'
3.
may be
4.
Jcesrah^ as
c:-^:^*!*^:
"perhaps thou;"
but fethah
^^Ic
may be
followed
by an
accusative pronoun, as
as
"I
liave
no power
left in
good.
That has come upon mo which makes me forget the gazelle and
ghazal (a form of poetry)."
tlie
246
A.EABIC
GRAMMAR.
3.
(152). Verbs which express certain knowledge, suspicion, or calculation, are called c_j>yjLH
J'.*it
"verbs de-
They
are
Jlrito fancy.
J.i to know.
to reckon.
*.rj
J>^. to
find.
to suppose,
^j^
to perc'ive.
*^
cXc
x ^
to count. to set
^
To
to think.
jjx^
down
as.
sXst]. to
Jx?^
in the sense of
to
make
into."
become.
case,
one
an accomplished man.
\j^s- \.z^-^)a
Amr
truthful.
liL'Jv-s
^..G
tUJ^"^ "l
11^
and
o-tj
may be
j'
14^:^*
x>^o^^o^ \^ \si\
o^i
l::^^^
away.
C'w>U iX?
C*
Amr know
Bekr
as truthful."
When
used parenthetically, as an
VERBS OF PEAISE AND ELAME.
247
noun, as
;>
o^^
i;
o^
"Zeid
^^^^
I
is
(I think) a fool."
''--'^~^
tjV
'Hi
^^
ajIs
Jup
l--
l::^^!^
knew
(it)
certainly Zeid
is
standing.*
J li
ji^z
z*^
Jk-S
e:^:^
j4^
"^Ij^
Lii-vtlc
"l
did not
stand-
ing or
4.
(153).
The verbs
:
number, namely
x^
^
For
praise.
_'
,
For blame.
and Jj.i require a definite agent or nominative, in conjunction with which they serve as a predicate to a
1x1
noun, the
sentence
;
latter, hoAvevcr,
a good
man,
"J
is
Zeid."
^'"
subject.
literally.
Good
is
the
man
(namely)
Zeid.
You may
1^ with
Advetbial.
^'""." o/ subject.
Good
**j, Jul),
is
(he)
(110.
man (namely)
Zeid.
and
^H, agree
number.
\jJ!p-
^L>
is
may be
compounded
is
The
subject
248
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
by \x^
is
the
l"*
two men
"We may
also
add
^l^.
5.
PARTICLES
They
are
*-^^-^
JjJ "probably."
would that."
,^
^^\
"but."
"that" (emphatic).^
^\^
'^^^S
verily."
in their
mode
of
governing, for they put the noun or subject in the objective or accusative,
case
thus
Uoli Sij
^
^
Jli Ijdj
standing."
Examples
aJIj
\j^^s.
^
\si\ Ijdj
heard that
Amr
(is)
coming."
Ju.j1
^ "As
^^
*'
if
iJr^
>yo
<
"But Zeid
a miser."
\^t}\
c:^
This
is
249
forgiving."
Jli.
<iJjl
JjJ
There
is little
is
JJi,*
_jJkxJl Jj]
"Most
likely the
enemy
are approaching."
If the subject of
^^^
it
must be repeated
in its detached
"verily
Thou
One."
The
with
noun, unless
its
consist
of an adverb or a preposition
it
may
precede
is
it,
as
CSsu. ^\
Zeid."
\S}j j^-^^
^ ^^
'
is
Zeid."
^\^ ''verily
In such an expression as
the house
is its
^l>-lojllll
in
owner,"
it
If the pleonastic C*
is
added
to
any of these
particles,
Sjj \^\
"vcniy
Zeid
is
standing."
is
(Xj
is
rule, as Ifij
LyJ Ucx^].
[The reason
be that
fact (is),"
being indeclinable,
The
particle
signifying commencement,
If
it
some-
^\^.
Zeid
is
standing
is
" but
if
it
be joined
^\
to
the noun,
the order
reversed, as
CJj^ljJl^
"verily in the
house
is
Zeid;" but
Thou
art
250
ARABIC GEAMMAR.
POSITION OP
is
,.,1
IN THE SENTENCE.
it
*,t
is
a fresh clause, as
2i\i IjoJ
is
standing."
Jli
^
y
aj!
9-^
^JJ\
9
me who verily
he
is
standing.'
'
rJ
J^lj
djl
Jsf
'^y "l
to
passed by a
plished."
man he
is
certainly accom-
y%
>,
-,
-'
99^>
Or simply
"I
add a fresh
visited him,
at the
hope."
Or
as
particles as
.
1j[
,
IJl^
\si\
cLl^
J4^
sitting."
L^JiJ
"I
said,"
t\
"is not?"
*
as
Ijli \:si\
c:-Jj
"l
is
standing.'
Or
''S^
fjo';
iXJiJi
Or
to is introduced
by the
is
particle
J\^
aj.\^^
"by God
there
Zeid standing."
USE OF
^
is
^1
is
immediately introduced
by the verb, as
JU
JU
Ijjj
^\
s_sf^-
"' ^^^
is
standing.'
ox THE USE OF
Ciol o'J^-^
It
''.,\
c'i.
AND vj ^J
^^'-^
251
jj-ili
is
my
"My
j^,ikiJ
you
utter."
B-emember
my
whole universe."
Kor.
it
ii.
44.
shall
Kor
viii. 7.
Even where
preposition,
'j
its
complement with a
^!,!
^*
i,_..-^jli
<L>Ji\>^ l::^^~
,.,1
OE
,.,1
MAT BE
USED,
i_J,
where
it
quence, as
is
V?^
^ti
j^U
^%.*
me
(he)
honoured."
2.
when
the subject of
,^,1
the oath
not preceded
is
God
3.
Zeid
j^
by J,
as IjL* Sjj
/Jll
"by
standing."
y^i
"undoubtedly," as
tl
'
S Py ^i-o
aJii
-OJi
^^
)!
^^ Ajs-
Undoubtedly God
is
forgiving."
when it
introduces
SJi ^jt
"
ajJ\
j^^ ^\
the
first
thing I say
is,
'
252
ARABIC GRAMilAR.
LOSS OF
THE FINAL
^^
Ilf
Of
^,
"^l^
be shortened into
^]^,
',
under the
^,J_
following; circumstances
ceases to
its
govern
its
before
predicate, as
^UH
jjj ^\
"verily Zeid
is
standing."
(
J appears
to
be used in
.)
from
the negative ^\
^1 has for
its
its
noun an
indefinite
knew
that Zeid
was standing."
lor
^li
j>.j
^\ <^:^^z
*I
knew
that
it
(the fact)
was thus
Zeid was
standing.'
If the
verb,
it
commencement of such a sentence be a declinable must be separated from the particle ^t by one
i_Jj-j
or (^, or
else
by a negative
Si
/yij'
He knows
'Does
that
j-4>^jjJ
^ j^LwJ|\
t^..>*csr\
man
think that
?
we
shall not
3.
<L*llic
"
Kor. Ixxv.
for its
"as
if
Zeid were a
,
lion."
the particle
j^j
or J
as
KEGATIYE PARTICLES.
1/'
253
stood up."
Juj
j*lj
jJ
j^li
Jcj;
C-?V.
'^
kj^
'-^^
yl.
^^
removal of
it
ceases to have
any
direct con-
6.
NEGATIVE PARTICLES.
(156).
The
particles of negation,
U,
f,
88(41), and
p.
195(110)5.
The following
the negation be
complete and continuous, and the order of words correct, as UjIj Joj
"Zeid
is
not standing."
if
But
if
the
words be disturbed,
S
^
"^
it
S o^*
^
ti*
j\L
V\^
^J
tVJ
J li
L*
Not standing
Zeid."
its
are indefinite.
2. If the predicate
3.
If the
negative be not
as
f-^l^
^j
"there
is
no man present."
6A
and
when
when
the
noun
as
is
predicate
not
both
mentioned
together,
it
"rebels repent
not
254
a noun
;
ARABIC GEAMMAR.
others say that
is
it
may govern
it
if
the proper
order of words
preserved, as
He
^^1^
to corroborate
the negation
in this case
it
fluence on any following words, as 3^1:?jjJ is not a fool." THE ABSOLUTE NEGATIVE j^i^sT iLiU (157).
1
.
"Zeid
When
i.e. it
introduces
^^j
"there
is
no man coming."
the
is
the subject
defi-
always in a manner
A^\
''
{la scienza),
see p.
157
(81).
If
it
may
still
and 140), as j^JJl ^^ (orcijll^j^) t^lL*^ "there are no believers (fem.) in the town."
c^v"*"^
"There
are not
two moons
in the sky."
^ ^^^^
ABSOLUTE NEGATION.
255
temviii is retained, as
"There
is
j-iU-
i^ji
\j.^1 "There
1
is
There
is
'*
f,
but
But
if
the
noun be
definite, or separated
by any
1),
interis
it
not
Zeid
is
Amr
and there
is
not with us a
woman."
i
"When there
i is
^),
;
either or both
may be used
thus
There
is
no strength and no
in
power but
God."
The
in the
does not
alter its
^t
"is there no
man
house?"
256
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
it
must
be expressed, as
jjj ^^^
lA J^j
if it
is
"there
is
be obvious,
it
" there
no harm,
scilicet
Cj^^l to thee."
RELATIVE SENTENCES.
(158).
The
relative sentence in
(2)
The
(3)
The
c
-Si-
qualificative clause.
The pronoun
^jJ\ J^J^
(2) (3) (4)
JVl^^
literally,
The man
who
saw
him.
RELATIVES OR CONJUNCTIVES.
(159).
definite
i^'^'\
is for
definite
^^ "who?" and U "what?" are used. In interrogation we may add the demonstrative pronoun and say, "who is that?" l3 IJ. "what is that?" ^3
The
article Jl is
regarded as a relative:
(l)
when joined
t_>?^^T j i^jds\
(2)
in such expressions as
(
^J^^ "the
228 (138);
beautiful of face"
(3)
= a^j
see p.
when
(as it sometimes
is) it is
verse
And he
ena of
with
sh'ihah^
its lair,
enters," _~2JbJ|
^
'
J->^3icj ^_^ jj
into
which
it
pops."
growing in
desert, especially ia
"
SMhah"
tlae
the mouatain
distiicLS.
RELATIVES OR CONJUNCTIVES.
\_Note.
257
verb
is
article,
when
the latter
is
thus used
as
By
fire
with
up dust therein."
Kor.
c.
4.]
etc.,
may
He
S _j^ ^9 09
of
them who
pleases
is
standing
09
me."
^i.'i-
''P-ii's.
\^\^ \zJ\
particular,
else of the
same nature
accusative, as
iUL=^
'C^O-O
\
\^\
''^i
JL^\
/-^Ox
^^1
\
God
pardon us
(y^^
\d
^^ ^'^
band."
9
S"^'
e;^ "We
\A
will do so
and
we
the tribe in
question."
C^)\
\^\ ^J^
J^l
"l
will do so
and
so I
individually."
and 1^1 may be omitted, provided the noun thus specified have the article, as
Or
l^^J
"We
men
to guests."
*-^l;y ^
'W^^^4^"*
\cJ^
have heirs."
17
258
--I
4lEabic
grammae.
is
followed
;
admiration
if it
Ly the come
genitive
after
also
used to express
it
an indefinite noun,
agrees
with
it,
c^^ "thou
"
it is
hast brought
me
man
as
If
^j
to
me
is)f"
^ and U.
noun
^*^..
1
referring to
in gender
J^-yl
'*^^.^_^
I saw a
man who
me."
please
"i
jj-^ ilujol
^j^ '*^Jj
-^
me."
i^<
and
are always masculine singular, unless specito the contrary, or to avoid ambiguity, as
{lit.
ally defined
L5
"l
^ A^\ ^
(her)
y
9
"-^^j
o
''
of
women
nine),
-^-Sc-*o ^
is
femi-
and ^'^^^0
(V'^^ i^^^j'j
it is
"^
visited people
plural).
OTHER CONJUNCTIVES.
(160).
Amongst
the
^^^1,
conjunctives
^!,t,
or
relatives
are
^,
U, ^.
^^
(^1
l::^-js-
^^
i..:^^-
J\ "that," with a
noun and
its attribute,
the substan-
259
^^jJCj
''
is
l5li
CvJ ^\
standing."
aorist, as l1(,.j1
^
''I
or ^^4
^^G
c:--v-.p-
may
visit
you."
is
standing for
is
rare).
"if,"
"that,"
is
the aorist, as
,'
^ ^
4,\i
c
p
*yi_;
Juj
<-^'-V^^
"l would
that Zeid
had stood."
joj
J.\
is
The
relative
^^'<^\
L<J^^=r
9
i^-i.'-
Se came
I
to
me
wlio
rose.''*
9 pi-
tS-O
jli i^\
2.
its
tj?^^^ c:-^.'lJ
is
standing."
An
noun, as
tl/jki^ (^^iJ^ ^i-.js*;l
I like
him who
is
with you."
the heuveu
^i;^^ J
c:jlj.4>^n
|J
'
To God
(belongs)
what
is in
you cannot
say,
2 GO
ARABIC GEAMMAR,
,"
nor
j*jJl
^jJl 5^_
lie
3.
An
noun expressive
of an inherent quality, as
" The
beater."
" The
fair of face."
when
it is
agrees with
in gender, number,
and person, as
I struck.
^iyi u?^^
Lk.^
-J
^^
'^\j>-
He came whom
^^ jJl
of
whom
I struck."
is
in the
proverbial expression
(for
^Ij e^t
iU^lj "its
decider").
of any but the third person as the pronoun
is rare,
The use
although
we do meet
\j\
"I am
he
who
am who
gave you
the book."
CONDITIONAL SENTENCES.
(163).
apodosis
_J
generally introduced
by one
of the particles
and cJ
The
"
CONDITIONAL SENTENCES.
261
duced by j^ or
proposition
1.
;
t_i
is
Imperative, asCi^-y^^^^ lI^C^Ij ^ijj "visit me and If the command be a noun, and I will honour you."
is
pointed
with
dhammah, as C3^\
^y^^
^ "hold
j^
your tongue,
and
2.
I will treat
you well."
>----i.'V. ^
Prohibitive, as tlCLc
^ ^j>v^
visit
ul/,^J
uJ^l
i5
"I do
not
or I
would
^
*\
you."
^_5t?'^;
3.
Precative, as l^^U
,\^
"
!
J-^li
^j
'
I^ord
a.JJ^ tirvTl
^^
^JV-^ t>:l^
^.y-!
J*
'
^^^
Polite invitation, as
\j^=>-
^..^^i
^^:xj
Ua:^
Jj:.j'
)!1
"will you not alight with us, and you will meet with
good treatment."
6.
^^ CS^Jj^
us? we
will
honour you."
Desire, as
i.i
j Ju^il ^ ^ j j^^ili ^U
away
^
j\
in alms
j^jI*
Hope, as
^.0
<);.-#^.C:i
u^^^^^'^
"perhaps
and we
will
honour him."
time
;
The
aorist subjunctive
it
always
refers to future
if
the
present be intended,
must be
in the indicative
mood, as
" 2eid
is so ill
jU> CS'^^y JJ
'
2^2
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
then in that case I think you are speaking the truth," in reply to
The
preterite, the
J-^" ^\
"have won,"
as
we
the latter
cLJ^ltf ^\^
may
ji^ -y^j
lL^
^\^
The introduction
aorist, as
<^^^
.'
r*yV.J^
^,.^ (*^^
L::-^/J
"if you
rise,
rise too."
k_^Jbjj
i_>wc5-Ui i_^ji>jj)!
The
apodosis
t-::-Ni^
may be even
(^1 M^ya t::-^\
for
omitted, as
You
are
it."
unjust
if
you
have
done
^ A% c:^!
"You
are unjust
it
i.e.
if
you have
done
must not be
it
preterite, at least in
;
imply a request
or be a neuter verb
or be governed
by any
and
it
must not
JJ
or S.
2G3
from occurring iu
as ^ilixu^i ^-^jr^
the protasis, it
must be introduced by
^,
^
be
"
if
shall succeed."
If
it
an
aorist,
aifirnlative or
particle i it
may
but
if
apoco-
pated,
it
must be introduced by
The
Even
Jo
if
have the
preterite,
still
future, as U-il
1:1=^
^^>
^V
\j\i
"when
life
comes,
we
will gather
you
Kor.
xvii. 106.
iNVERS^ION OF
(165).
We
ment
of a proposition
(1)
Verb,
(3)
(2)
Agent,
(1) (2)
(1)
Object, as
(3)
./Kc.
JoJ
f^j^
Ze'id.
struck
Amr."
may be
placed
as
i<r.j^ '^j
iz.ij3\j>j\
'Z^^^ struck
(1)
mc."
(2)
Zeid
Zeid
(3)
<ll-sjs-Us
(li l::^-^
Joj
I I
slave.
(
.^
i^.'tijc
i-i
lU\^ Lvj
^^^^9
lAki
Zeid
(4)
\
'^
-'
iL>j>-\^
his slave, or
2C4
In
(1)
verb with
object
^J^
is
the predicate.
is
In
(2)
understood,
e.g.
Qj ^1
and
it
be
a verbal proposition^
l13o^ ^^j^ ^;j
j^]^
is
case, as
" If Zeid you strike him, he. will " if" being always used with verbs. strike you;" ^\
But
behold
if it
nominative, as
!
Vj
^"^^
Zeid
;"
\'^\
being used
wdth nouns.
If
it
it
may be
I stnick him."
When
iCL^
an exception
is
noun
is
in
.A^
>
CS^-.>.=>-^
friend,
but (and) as
foi'
Amr
S 9 ^ <Uj J \\S.
9
^ij
O,*
^Kj ^
"^
-^
ic.^Ji>ii\
iri*^ J XKsrr*
(j-u3s5-
but as
for Jaafar
him away."
for
ii4ljJj
^r'*>*i <X'J
(J^
Amr
they
it
will be well to
notice: (1)
"Zeid
rose
and
sat."
This
is
;;
EXCEPTION.
simple case
the
actions
265
so
follow
closely
one upon
may be
is
way.
Zeid."
first
^J^J^
in the
it
verb, as
in
me
so I struck Zeid."
;
you cannot,
Zeid struck you," because in this case the i in au;^ would be ambiguous, being in fact a correlative pronoun
referring to a
is
inad-
'^ and
ibt GoTi
say,
QJ
^i--^j
1^^:^
"I thought
was
is
in
number and
rose
tense, as
and
sat,"
where
agrees with
it
as occupying the
most important
*lj,
as the nearest.
and
say,
a.^*
^ j^j
^^li
EXCEPTION.
(167).
,
are 1l which
\ls.,
a particle
and
o>~!,
ik-j
and
l-iU-,
which are
nature of verbs.
'
'
2G6
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
to
1.
^1
"i]
if
is
people
Otherwise
's^j 1]^
it is
j*'\i
put in simple
Jo-t
"no one
rose
but Zeid."
If the
noun
to
which exception
is
^\
made be understood,
is
-^
jjj
1'!^
^['i
Zeid.'*
Iaj;
Oy'
*1
-a
lt-oK t
9
t/^-*
4ij^
^\
<-::^jj^
U
2.
r^i
and
^ij-^
and
t^j-j,
a state of construction.
^y^
is
indeclinable,
but^i
is
declined,
same rules
^}\
noun following ^
as
j^
(*y^^ (*^
'
-i.l/'*
i^\jj^ (*y^V
'"
where
it is
No
Jkj
- Jks-
b c:j
^..t
where
it is
<\>\j^ 5^^ \^
'
. ;
ArposiTiON.
2G7
Zcid.'*
Jk);
-^i Li-^'^ t*
vx
^
O''
Ox
lijjjJc
c:-?,.'*
U
^ A
where
it is
declined.
X y
3.
\s.y
iJ-,
and
liilp^,
iX having
for the
prefixed.
(jjj \11
U Z^jT^U
^
^i^^,
t
/-o^
>_jiL]
1
'y
m- wbat
\
is
Jjj Is-
^Tp^
fi.oni)
Zeid.
If
U
H
be omitted, they
may be
is rare.
"especially,"
it,
may
^\
genitive after
as ^yj
SJ uL^
is
^^\
In the
jjj ^^
first
case Jyj
KZ^
"i
considered as equivalent to
a.j
is
JL^
^,
regarded as the
complement of
the particle
and in a
state of construction
with
it
influ-
207 (121).
APPOSITION.
(1G8). "Words in apposition are put in the same case,
as J^IIjTj^j ^1^
But
if
the
first
is
put in the
it
been
J^
illO j *-^.1;
268
If the
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
noun has
lost its
case-ending accidentally,
as,
it
for instance,
by
!
may
take either
''
or
as
1^1
jt
^^J>^\
j^j
Ij
"Oh
Zeid
the generous
There are
1.
Description.
2. 3. 4.
^*
(Jlial
Ik-^y
Simple Apposition.
Corroboration.
jjJ Substitution.
toQTwil^r. Explanatory Apposition.
1.
DESCRIPTIOIf.
(169).
To
what we should
call
ad-
jectives; but
tlie
student's
mind
as an abstract adjective.
Thus
in the expression
1)^ Jp-J
the word
l;^i
The
be "a man, a
it
generous one."
how
is
that
we
much
as
The Descriptive
noun
itself,
^i ^^_
"^jj*
"I passed by
a generous
man;"
or to some-
^J
Jj>-^ ^jj"*
"
''
man whose
father
is
generous."
APPOsiTiox.
2G9
"be
derived form, as
s S
;o.
^ ^
from
c_^.
'
handsome," from
,.,
^oS
j-iil
2.
A demonstrative pronoun, as
Zeid here."
j^
jojj ^^^jy*
"I passed
by
(thisj
3.
possession
JU
^^U ^\ ^j
as
J-=r^
cu^
<-^^f*
"I
passed by
man
4.
A relative noun,
of Beyrout."
^*^{ u^?.
"I passed by a
man
The noun thus qualified must be expressed and if it be indefinite, it must be limited to one individual, as in
;
is
Jj^ jlc
Jj^jj lI:"^
"I passed by
man;" but
this is for
itself
c^i
"a
must stand by
;
had ^ J prefixed
see p.
208 (123).
A
a
may
^f^
"I
"I passed
by
father
as
is
standing."
Or
consisting of a
j^assed
verb and
a
its object,
^^*
loves knowledge."
270
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
its
1
So too an adverb or a preposition and
jijj\
case,
as
or
^y
(Jjjc^ Jsr^j
^^'\
1 iiive
When the
it
noun
itself,
follows
in gender, number,
and
case,
and in taking
may
be, as
came.'^
(J^liJl
J^J^ ^^^
"l
passed by an accomplished
woman."
When
and
case,
it
noun
in
number
person
178
is
or whose two
^0.^0
9
parents, or parents
accomplished."
99 y^
9 ^.^t>0
99^1^"^ 9^
9 <i-*0 _^
" The man came whose daughter is or whose two, or daughters are
accomplished."
In these cases the singular or the broken plural may
be used
J=r-^
^y*
In
is
"I
passed by a
man whose
way
short,
con-
APPOSITION.
271
2.
SIMPLE APPOSITION.
is
and
logical.
The
first is
by
a simjDle conjunction, as
j!r^ i
9
i^
^j
.
^. ^[^^
*Ji_j
fJi
y\^^^i^9yt^
^^^\ c_^Jjij
^^
honour him."
If the
first
it
verbal form,
as jjj J
\jt
in
its
detached shape,
I
i-i:_Jj^
came
in
(lit.
came, I and
it
Zeid)," unless a
word intervene,
which case
need
not be so repeated, as
to-day."
If the
first
IJj
^^r^^
<^:,^3
word be a
preposition
0>.O
must be repeated, as
'-
J CS-^ '"Vr*
cLC;.t
1^^
J^
is
between
me and
thee."
must
agree in tense, as
lAxs
aUj
He
He
rose
and
sat.'*
Jkxiij
_j
^yi)
rises
and
sits."
If the
first
may be
a verb, as
And by
ing,
Kor.
c.
3-4.
272
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
as in the verse
Oh
many
who
is
beginning to walk."
where ll^
ji
is
equivalent to a participle.
PARTICLES EMPLOYED
(173).
tion J
IN"
The
particles
are
"and," implying simple conjunction,
asJ^jSjj
as
*'Zeidand'Amr."
<_J
^^X
1)
ilj
^Xc
11 j^j
'A^
^j^ "even
to,"
r^"^^
"The
i*'^^
pilgrims
arrived,
even
to
those
walking on foot."
Ji j^J
i^.
as
^^
J.V
5j
i^2J
"is
^
either
1'
"and he learned
law or grammar."
"Zeid came
not 'Amr."
S j^j
A:^
APPOSITION OF CORROBORATION.
''nay," "or rather," alternative,
to
273
Jj j^J
j^b
as^^
"Zeid came
me
^f^
IP
i^rsT
C/^
l.:j-
"but," as
J
ff
^^;'-c
(j^
,
k^Jj
to
me, but
Amr
did not
o ^
50^
jJJjj^x ijSj
^\ ^*Ip-
L#
Amr
ha3
come."
3.
CORROBORATION.
(174).
The
(1)
the words, or
the sense.
The
first
consists of
itself,
simjDle repetition
by way
J^l:?-
of emphasising the
Zeid, Zeid
word
as
^\
JkJj
came
to
me.
<-r^/*
'"-^
*..0
xj
Yes, yes
Or
it is
ci^J
jk^
^l:^ X ^
,^
lion, a lion
came."
iTo^ ^ ^ ^
fcXjj
^j^^
*xj
Zeid
sat, sat
down.
!
,-j>-
Yes, certainly
Or
"Zeid
If
it is
is
standing, Zeid
standing."
it
word
to
which
it
is
affixed
must
also
be repeated, as
"I passed by
thee,
It
^X'*
So, too,
the initiative
^^'J
'^\
noun, as
u[
^^'.j
^p.
18
274
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
tlie
verb or pre-
it
L
-t
must be repeated
'^
Ox X
Jl ^-^{;*
1,1
thou. "
i1
UT i_S^.r^
Ji)
"Thou
hast struck
me
me."
i^
CLJ
y*
him."
it
in the
person,
namely,
\^\^
after
the particle
of restriction
Uj5_, as Ol
*^
"no one
L5
I
rights;
am he who
provides
them with
livelihood, and
who
defends their
me
By
in the sense
as
"he
himself,"
" they
all of
like,
in Arabic as follows
my
our
yourthem
thyhimher
are rendered
j^^i
self
selves,
by the words
or "essence,"
jjuli
"eye"
J^sS agrees in
number with
MASCULINE.
A^JiJ J^ij
\
f
i
Zeid himself
.xj'y'oi
,xo^-o
jo'^Vj-^^
~x
UL-gM
carne
to
Lsi^^
'^^^
^,-Jj\ L:j?"^V^
FEMININE.
x^
o X ro
^.ej
jc^ ^
^
Hind
c:^^^-
herself
U^^ijl lO^*^^
^^Ijj^
c:-j\j>i^l
>
came.
'
"SELFj" "selves,"
is
etc.,
HOW
EXPRESSED.
275
"J^
i^^^
lu\s:^^
'*
We
may
also
say
a^A-^
persona^
'
as
"All of them"
"all,"
with
the
affixed
^K,
as
\
fern.
^:^^^
manner
as
-"ll,
^^^
U>i>iii
j*^iJ
^\:>-
"The
people came,
all
of them."
l/i.^^.-:di
^jjM^b
is
"he
y
^ o -^ oo
^ji*.-^'!
7--^^'
^
c:-^-^
'^
all-together."
t^
%
^LjT
^^A-zsA
^^z
And on
If
or
it
^^.L'
is
to
as
thyself didst strike."
Thou
^J-c
^
=
'-r-N-a
He
:=
himself struck.
"
self,"
J.l3*
=" selves,"
"all," '*-^^\
in"
same manner
Arabic as in English.
276
ARABIC UEAMMAR.
other," ''one another," are expressed
"Each
"a
mntual
by J^j
to the
two parties
;>
o^
Ox
^_/i*j
(*-^*^'V
wi
'5~^1
X
(^
^ V -i-^?
^Lc ^^xj
j-a>uLij
J-j^^ lL$3j
we given
4.
APPOSITION OF SUBSTITUTION.
is
(175). This
1.
of four kinds
formable to
in meaning, as
fvjj
your
brother, came."
2.
OS yxoy
CxS
meant, as
a third of
3.
loaf
it
half of
it
most of
word
Substitution of a
ment respecting
is
a person or thing,
and
to
imply that
it
itself,
but something
which
'
is
meant, as
P9(^
SOX
xxoS
i^i-js-1
X
9
<tK _
tU...^.:^-
_ (Ui^ Juj
I like Zeid
speech,"
garment."
ijy
j\
^ji
i^jj
L-^]^
his
4.
Substitution of a
word
Unffitcv,
or a statement erroneously
reflection, as
tjU\
iJJj^jT .jj^Jj
she-camel."
6.
EXPLANATORY APPOSITION.
(176).
larly
'
"
APPOSITIOX OF VOCATIVES.
ADMIRATION.
277
'
Your
Zeid,"
said to be
^^CjT^ji^.
noun (substantive
or adjective) in apposition to a
;
vocative,
may
unless
it
struction with
objective, as
^
in
which case
it
"
-W j.,*^"*
I)
the Prophet."
JiWl
Sij b
^\ J-U.
(*rr^l/l
V.
"0^ Abraham,
^^
^,5).
the friend of
God."
^^J
V.
^^^ s*^^ of
brother."
the word
occur between
its alif^
two proper
-3,
in apposition
may
'
be pointed with
dlmmmah
or fethaJi^ as
*^
cJi
"^I)
Zeid, the
son of
Amr.
ADMIRATION.
many forms
of expressing admiration
God
bless
him^
for a
horseman "
!
" what
a fine horseman!"
b)|^ bb^j
Selma
bravo
bravo
2."
278
ARABIC GRAMALVR.
Joef
U. and
(2)
Jxi\.
J^]
]jj\
^
U
"How
How
handsome
is
Zeid!"
is
handsome he
!"
(2)
by
the preposition
jjjj ,.,*u-\
/'I
<1L'
How
<
handsome
noble he
is
Zeid !"
*,i\
How
is
"
!
and
Jjtj!,
in the sentence.
The thing
if it
"l
see
Umm
Amr, her
tears
where
]^--sl
^^li
I* ^
stands for
U^l
^l^
la
the thing
being sufficiently
proposition introduced
by
"Oh,
my
two
!
friends,
how fit
is it for
man
279
SECTION
III.
THE
P ARTICLES
AXD
IXDE-
CLIXABLE WOEDS.
PAETICLES.
(178). In addition to the particles already treated of
in the course of this work, there are
it
used in conditional sentences, and followed by J in the complement, as 'icl.^jS SjJ A^ ^' "if Zeid had come, I would have honoured him."
'^
going
This last
is
books commence,
viz. s^j
ut
lit.
i.e.
"after
ft
'
jjj aUs^
li
'
Jl.' ;i
When
J^ji
OS
an alternative follows,
iL'iil
f,\
it is
introduced by
^*^,
as
cJ
u-*:'"?
'
vessel or
^
yO
"
''
honey?"
the iar or in the
t--o
s-
\'1\
*\ (.iiLu.O<Ljl^l
Jl "is your
dihs in
leathern bottle?"
Ji>
is
tive questions, as
"
280
S'-''
ARABIC GEAMMAR.
^
'
o
J-fe
Jjj *Si
JU
Amr
standing
it
J.J&
gives
'\^\
a future sense.
'Yes."
Oh, yes; certainly!'*
"Yes."
Just so."
^b
-c?-
^\ "Yes"
inter^_f ^
ui
^T
t*l
"Yerily."
The two
course
Ij>
;
dis-
V\
is
also
employed in making a
When
this is
tive
pronoun
1J,
intervenes, as
liyj)
U
*^
]I \
"Ho!
\3 L^J^ li
"Ho! you
there."
an action
\j
Q
(179).
having neglected
it.
tl4^
signifies
"where," and
is
generally joined
to a sentence.
^^A is
an interrogative of place,
commonly used
for
Id Egypt \^i\
is
is
^
\
"yes!" and
in Syria
and els^vrtere
is
^\
frequently prefixed to
Jo
r
thus,
to
^ ^1
"yes!"
<)J3^.
'
^J^
*
also used,
.
especially
by Turks, as equivalent
of any one.
AJs^D
PLACE,
281
= jc^.
pronoim, as
^;jJ
^jJ becomes
\_Kote.
^-jO
with the
its
aflB.xed
^jJ
governs
it
noun in the
genitive,
ception of
ij^, which
,jj^\
"yesterday," but
in construction
it
is past.
If
it is
declinable
as an ordinary noun.
bj
"at
all,"
past time, as Lj
him
at all."
^Ic
time.
it is
(all
^'everj"
it is
it
If
and ever."
it
jlJ^
and
j^*
j|^
^j^
"when,"
."
. . .
"when you
II^
are, or
^jtjuli "and
when
i\
saw him, he
rose."
"when,"
^\ "where?"
^^bt
i.?
^
^.'-<
interrogative or conditional.
"when,"
"how,"
^il
"now,"
This
is
not properly
noun
(ij^
^2,T
article.
and
may have
282
S
S 0-'
O
AEABIC GEAMMAE.
j^\
9^9
"My
father
j^s. jJj J^
i/yuJU" u::^!
p o ^5
\
'-^-^:r*"
-J,
"l
sat
^^
-o X
y'i.
o ^
Note.
jijj, j^j^o-,
of JU as
(^
P 9 ^
$ 0
P ^(^'-
i^ju5 ^-jjl^n
f-AX>
JJi
"This
is
the day
when
their sincerity
li-J1 (^;:j^
^ O^
/j
fc
to her house."
^ijjl>-
^^
j^
''that is," is
^\ u\.s."^**^
jj&
gold."
J^ and
lJ*!: are
to
im-
may be
in English
is
by
j*juj
approaching, I suppose."
Like
its
English equivalent,
" a liar will speak
it
it is
jJj
With
the preterite
implies the
The Erair
is
mounted"
(said to people
who
L-^
is"
Zeid came
you
to do a
thing, or
makes an
assertion.
INDECLINABLE WORDS.
2S3
PLEONASTIC PARTICLES.
(180). Pleonastic particles are
^-j after JyTi
"it
is
not."
J "to"
S
is
sometimes,
though
rarely,
so
used,
as
with
in
,.,sr L^",-!!
"we have
fathers."
we nor our
U in conditional sentences (see p. 175). U after '^^ and ^^^ in which case it does
them from governing the genitive as before.
not prevent
U U
word
\\
197 (HI).
U^ "like what"
whilst,"
= " as."
whenever," the
\_Note.
In
U-uS
it is
and Uii
and the
to
which
U,
as
IjIj jj^,
'^S
" Zeid
is
not
"that," after
that
"
when
as
ll^
ITj
^<^
^'
INDECLINABLE WORDS.
(181). Indeclinable words,
i.e.
those
ivliicli
do not cliange
the
following
Particles.
The
preterite
p. 2G, note
The
aorist
when
^ or ^.
284
All nouns,
first
AEABIC GRAMMAE.
when
person.
The
relative
pronouns
^ and U.
Interjections.
Compound
<-ibljl-^
expressions.
or
metonyms.
3.
1. COMFOtrifD
EXPRESSIONS.
(182). 1.
to 19,
y ^
"i-
^'
jlL. i^sA
^U- "Eleven
"l saw
came.'^
JLs. Ss-\
(::-y,K
eleven."
yis.
Jk5.lj
'-^jj^
'l passed
by eleven."
jjortions of the
t^ j^nout.
ujj^
compound
jLs.
is
first
portion being
Compound adverbs
fV^ i^V. cJ^
)
of time
^
and
place, as
^Uu.^
^^'1 so
comes
to
me morning and
evening." evening.
^ ^^
O''
i^\j!:l\
''
JJi
This wine
is
middling."
y ox
S ^9
.::^^
i-^W"
U^
So and so
ijiit.
is
my
cL'bll^
METONYMS.
285
is
3.
The
first
portion of
in-
declinable, as i^y^jJ^^
s
2.
tl>3^
Cl^blii METOXTMS.
^ o <
^ o
'.
j,
as
^z^ ^ u:-^^^\
Lii-vO
i.:^.
^^
<y
^_^li
The
affair
was
so
Si.::-Jj
I said to
him
so
2.
J:^
"how many?"
is
This
*Jk^L> aS
>
How many
dirhemsi*"
C^'j^ cry r^
'
If
it is
it refers,
the
latter is
IS-I
^J
|i!^
"How
many
slaves have
I?"
predicate of this
is
3. JclS
generally
J^^
i^V
^^^"^
c.'^
^'^^
he suffer
How many
Ah
!
4.
\^ "so and
so,"
accusative, as
Uijj
\j>^
^'^ "I
tiave
number
It
of dirhems."
also repeated with or without the conjunc-
may be
286
tion, as
AEABIC GEAMMAR.
l^J
Ijo ^ \'6^
Ijo U\i
u,^* "I
liad
so
many
dirhems."
3.
(184).
Some
may
be
dhammah.
They
are
before
SUililARY OF THE PIIINCIPLES OF THE SYNTAX.
287
we
European syntax, we
if
them
full of
anomalies.
But
we
and verb,
etc.,
and look
at the question
from an Arabic
point of view,
we
shall find
them
The following
to
1.
composed
of
nouns,
verbs,
and
particles.
2.
all concrete]
that
is,
they are
all
what we should
abstract ideas.
3.
substantives,
which
Consequently, in analyzing the sentence ^^J^ "^{j A^ "Zeid the generous came," rather than say, as in Euro-
1y)\
is
an adjective agreeing
with
jkJj,
tion is
*l=j-
He came"
I
word
^l>-).
Juj
mean Zeid " (Zeid being the name of the agent J-c uJ
and therefore in apposition with
it).
^^,
>jiJ
(also in apposition
4.
a state of dependence
indicated
by the dependent
case,
288
ARABIC GEAMMAE.
indefinite
The
tenwin.
nature
of
a noun
is
expressed
by
The
and, if
definite nature of a
it
noun by the
it
stand by
itself,
except
be a proper name, by
The absence
noun, unless
it
of both temvln
and
article
is
be a proper name,
it.
of a
subject and
predicate, that
to speak,
we
as
are going
it,
PREDICATE.
JiXi jjj
Zeid
(is)
standing."
Both
put
with dhammah.
The simple
if
used to supply
its
"Zeid he
(is)
standing."
The
ooj
predicate
may
This
is
properly
^^
He
struck,''^
namely
the verb,
The agent "he" being contained in and the name of such agent being subsequently
for the sake of clearness,
is to
mentioned
hence
it
follows that
But
also
if
the verb
is
must be
The
If
object is
put
it is
may
be needed as
\l,..u*^
jjj IIj
"Zeid rose
hastily."
SUMMARY OF THE PIUNCIPLES OF THE SYNTAX.
State or condition
case.
is
289
Zeid
(is)
stand-
ing," in which
tlie
verb with
its
the predicate.
If,
however,
we wish
or, the
dition
is
clear that
by the
such
state
"Ci
S^^
Jl.-;
ILL:>-
iLs
tailor."
Hence
and similar
verbs
put
the
predi-
by extending
few,
^j.
or re-
Some
^'^^^
^^^
see p.
248 (154),
putting the subject in the objective case, and the predicate in the nominative, thus lUl) \sij
is
^J\^
"verily, Zeid
standing."
is
introduced by a
second or subordinate
initial particle
J.
The explana-
^
IjkjJ
am
going to speak of
Zeid,"
i.e.
my
subject.
{ivhence
qud.
in
iJie
tise
*juJ
Well
a
(J) be
new
is
it
sverc,
predicate,
and
is
tlierefore
nominative).
19
290
These
are
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
the
principal
points
Having mastered
and made
Ajrumiyeh.
end of
this
book
291
PAET III.-PROSODY.
SECTIO]^ I.THE METEE.
(186).
knowledge of Prosody
it
is
absolutely necessary
enables
him
to correct
NO:\IEXCLATUEE.
(187).
The
technical
name
comparison."
"a house
of
"a
tent," y-O^
^rA^
or
"^ house
of hair
The
parts of the^-i-l
JJ'J or
l::^-j
those of tlie^ii,
"tent," thus:
d^
Jjs-^
is
composed
called a
flaps
The
first
of these
called the
Jl^
or
or "hind-part."
consist of
"feet," called
^'\y>A
^)
292
of the Terse
;
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
"representing the
measure by parts of the root J*j " (see p. 19). The last foot of the first ^Vj^ is called the
determines the metre
;
J^*/^, as it
is
The opening
first
jl^
the
9)^^
is
"be-
ginning;" and
JA^
The metres
means
This word
it
primary signification
is
means
is
called
Is^i
it
should
and twenty
The
the
first
same rhyme
The two rhyming hemistichs with which the poem commences are called the ^Ll.^ "exordium." A poem without a ^LLiL* and consisting of only a few verses, is called I^^ "fragment."
,
The
scansion of a verse,
is
i.e.
its
called
^^^
"cutting up."
The elements
of
which the
feet are
composed are
syllables,
and short
;
namely,
QUAXTITT.
293
294
3.
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
4.
The The
;
of
Ij't
''I," is sliort,
tliiis
or
^\=^J.
is
long, *,
*j, ^xil,
ys,
Jj^
so too the
with which
j*^, (^j
and
are
From
of,
a certain
number
which are
called ^^J^, or
standards.
re^^resented
They consist of combinations of the elements by a word of the same measui-e formed from
OF
WHAT COMPOSED.
ARABIC SYMBOLS.
LATIN SYMBOLS.
/^
O ^
'
+
c^
.Lili^
OP
'^
'
S'^
i^
p y
^
si/
;>
y
^
.^
P(jy
S-'-'
C/
S--
L/
S^
-'
>
o ^
S yy
??'*-?'* '^!^
"*"
oy o^ o
.
**^XJ^ /J^^
c/^ J^x
c '-ST* jjj
+ ^j^^
O-oli
ifi^
J^Ji
+ j^Lfi^Aii-
;^,U->*J
The termination ^^
is
as is explained
further on,
2
This
may
be written
as
if
composed of the
following elements
THE FIRST CIRCLE.
295
THE CIRCLES.
(191).
They
number
variety
of metres, in all of
same
a
the
being
for
obtained
by beginning on
different
element
each metre.
which I
will give
and explain in
detail.
The
first circle is
cause
it is
composed of
of
9
7
The elements
10
which
composed are
4
1
^'
O'^
Kow
10
if
-^
^^
c;-'
u;-*
c^'
.r^ ^
^J e;^ cJ'
uA^^
we have
down
the
first
c/>XJ
metre of the
circle,
viz. J;;.yL
The
same
i,
by a word
.
of the
measure formed from the root J*j !N'ow, if instead of beginning ujion element
we
2,
wq
shall
have a different
effect
296
I
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
10
9
O XX
o ^
6 O XX
^j ^:o ^j
O
^
>>
>>
cy
wliich
is
i-^ii
circle, viz.
jua^U
Again, beginning on
1
we have
6
3
10
C y^
c y
Ox ox
C
cT*^ tj^
O ^ X
O
ox o
ox
o y
cr-:
X>JkAW.'l(
c;
,Uli
liA*^
/
xo X
\
which
is
12--a-1
xO X
o^
o? oxo*' o^
oy
oxo^
The following
for the circle
O X
<>
JxU L->w
jj _**,*
^>X*-11
-'
(_>i^ ^^
t,_
'
^^ X
By commencing
),jjy(,
at
the
we have
,
a verse in
recalls
with
^J^
which
j^;>a^5^
a verse
is
obtained in
for l^-^jf,
all
]=Lj
three
The
facts I
this part
of
my
subject.
memoria
technica verse,
metre begins
207
contain
circles
the
commencements
The
t\70
^ O ^o-o ^ y
Note.
That
in selecting a
word
as the representative
must be chosen
which actually
circle.
exists.
This
is
by^,
it
when beginning
a
foot, as
^^,-j
^^i
^=
O^
P '
,
J^^xi
but when
ends
it is
represented by
^xs.
^U, because
^oco-o
p>
-V b.
*
The second
circle is called
because
letters each.
It contains
two metres,
viz.
298
ARAEIC GRAMMAR.
o/'
9
O?
^ ^9
it
'^
^ 9
^^_jll
The mcmoria
techiica for
which
is
,l_CA^
C-3
^ f
->
Si
o^^-'
The
feet
and metres
^occ/-^3
;>y
2nd
circle, t_ilj.,Jl
^"yJ^ii.
^:xs.'^\ i".j!j.
J-'
P '-^ o P<^-a
The
third cirelo
its
is
called
e^L^-^^i
"hrouglit
first
on," because
circle.
feet are
oy
'"'
^Jt^
299
XX*">,o...^
fA.^ji^.^**''*
iX^^UjM^
^i-Mi,.H^IAi
,.Hieli
And
tlie
mcmoria teclinka
is
'^
o^
analysis of the
cii'cle
X o co-o
9-^
^j-^^*^
X O ?0-0 9^
ijb
The
fourth circle
is
called
>X^>^'J<v.^V
"
300
9
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
xO^
.-^1
The memoria
technica
is
y O ^JC-O P y
<
4th
ciecle,
d-^jl^^
'^y}'^-
TIIE
FIFTH CIRCLE
JUX4,)
l \
S"jb. ij
(19G).
The
"harmonious,"
it
because
harmonize in length;
contains two
metres, viz.
THE FIFTH CIRCLE.
^^^o
301
t_:>^,U:;^\
J_jxi
Jy6
Ji^xi
CSj\s^\
(or
^i\}\)
And
L5^
jUj
^ ^
jl llii'l,
C
-f-^
<!oJ Ajij
P Pi^^i^ty
^Ir.
j\ iJjc^ <L:u,^
Si -?i--o
py
i'j^j,
SCANSION.
(197). Note.
verso,
The
boiug written in
full,
302
AEABIC GEAMirAE.
^
-^ iO
^ ^ --o ^ ^S
is
ox
303
;
by the
the
j!aij is
1
or as
in ,^Lili,
its
vowel, as the
jU^\
is
when
it
of ^.l^li^*,
which becomes
,^l!fi^,,
ff-r
>
is
when
it is
comes
io-^
and
is
i-j
is
a foot
when
;
of Ji^xi
or
of ^i.-^ll^,
jii
is
when
it
of ^ILu.m,
p.
and
is
changed by
t_U^i
is
fifth letter
(^^yd^ll^,
when
of
,
becoming
j:Lz\L^^,
by
p.
297, Note.
when
it
quiescent, as the
ci^'lili;
or the
in
^,!
_i::Jl,*
becoming ^^^JJl^..
Note.
These
we
the
^^
part of a
to
j.jj
or "^/-"
nor can
we
apply the
^^
quiescent,
it is
304
ARABIC GEAMMAR.
{I.)
^jJJ^)
i__Jl?-'-.l
COlirOTJND DEVIATION".
Jl>-
is
and
by by
1^^-,
p.
1}y>- is
and of the
by
^,
leaving
297, Note,
^1^.
the concurrence of
:;
j^l
^ii^l
^^
as the suppres-
sion of the
of i^UU'U
by J^\i and
cJc^, as
of the
by
rir,
leaving
J-C^
is
^^i'ic.*
= ^^xii^
'Q^ and
by
(TtJ^,
\
the concurrence of
the suppression
of the
of
j^]
^Ixu*^
;
and of the
(^
^ by i^,
,
leaving
j_lv*
or of the
and
of ^j%:li
leaving
JfiiiJ
is
I
the concurrence of
^^ and
tla^, as
,
rendering the
of ^-l^ll* quiescent
j_^
by (^, leaving
l::J.^11^
= J-^li.*.
2.
lijtll
DEFECT.
(200).
The
"iSs.
consists either in
adding to or taking
from a
foot.
is
are
JJ^
Jjy
which
at the
end of a
adding
to ^Ullu!,,
which
becomes ^i'iL*
j->jj.;
= ^;'lcU::^, by p.
297, Note.
is
adding a quiescent
letter to a
\y*^
J^j at
the
end of a
foot, as ^^ to ^Lcll';J,
i---uaJ is
ijiJ^ l1->^
at the
end of a foot
Jjij^^,
as the addition of
to
^j'
at the
end of
^^Ij^Irl/.
305
Those
foot are
<_Jio-
wliicli
are forraed
which
is
C^
^^ ^^^
end of a
^]y6
LlckJj
;
foot, as of the ^1 in
iji'
^L^'i^ becoming
^^^ =
or
= ^U Ij.
is suppressing a ^-ii u^ll at the end of a foot, and making the previous consonant quiescent; as
J
jJi
is
becoming ^AL* =
at the
end of a
;
foot,
quiescent
the
and making
J.^ll^
quiescent in
or similarly in
.L*
wliich becomes
J^
^^
is
^^^^
jJj
quiescent in
= jj^tji^*
the suppression of one of the two moveable cL-^j letters of the c^'*"^* j^^ in ^i%lj, which becomes
or
of
is re-
moved) =
ijois
!J;^'
c^^^
jJ.'
from the
end of a
as
which
becomes
\kx^
= J^x.i
the
fu
is
foot,
d^i from
cu'iJiXt,
which becomes
I is
which then
becomes
iljju,
= ^<f^^
20
306
si is
AEABIC GRAMMAR.
the making the last letter of a ^*J^ ^j quiescent
the end of a foot, as the
c:-?
at
of
c:-'i;.*jl*,
which
lecomes cbi!^-^
= Jy^
ilr.
elil^j
Of
these are
^i~ which
is
beginning of a verse
or of one or
two
It
stich
being rare.
S
ft.
iV^
^'j^
*j^
is
first letter
i
of a j'^i'*
of
^jSj--?i,
at the
which
thus becomes
Jj
is
= ji^xi
,
when
it
is
and
is
not affected
by
any
"ji
J is
of a ^^s-'*
J^-|^
at
it
the beginning
occurs
of a verse,
when
is also aff'ected
s
by the
of
9
9
licence called
,
jLi
as
^Lo and
9
of the
^ by
,_^J,
the foot
then becoming
= J^ J^.^
L:^-
o^
^Li
is
^J.-^'X-*
the
being suppressed by
the foot ^Ul^
s -^
ij>. is
and the
-.
by
j^iiJ
making
(_S
in
,^A-^li-
the
^ by
uJa^,
making the
= Jj^*
307
at the be-
\1J^
is
a>
of
^
1^
IS
k^,>iit
j:^\i^
the
\
first
removing the
:
quiescent
is
the
first
thus becomes
= ^^<tl^
the concurrence of j^^ and (Jlc in ||^^ll<, the first removing the ^ and the second the 1, leaving
^^J^Ai is
the concurrence of
first
^^
*
,
'-,
and L_o
m
,
^-^J^i'oJ^ :
the
removing the
I
and the
is
i^ijX and
iS-c^'^*
and ul'j^
is
occasionally so
(201).
THE
PRIMITI^TE FEET.
FIRST FOOT,
Name
'
JiM.
of Foot.
308
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
SECOND FOOT,
Name
of Foot.
TABLES OF VAEIATIOXS
THE
L,
XORIUiAL FEET.
^
309
? ^
FOURTH
Name of Foot.
FOOT,
..^ficlj.
310
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
SIXTH FOOT,
o ^ o ^ o ^ ^J^^ku>jy*,
Name
of Foot.
311
SEVENTH FOOT,
^\r.{JcJ*.
Name
of Foot.
312
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
9
O ^
Name
of Foot.
THE METRES.
313
THE METRES.
(202).
Each
295)
may be
is
susceptible.
further subdivided
cl/p
Thus, the
;
first
metre
Jj^lJ
has for
its
normal ^*j=is
in
practice,
however, this
seldom
employed
i^^/tj
two variations
^Jl^ll
and
A
from
The verse
my
x-c
--
edition' of the
^
^ y
Poems
of El
Beha
Zoheir, p. 7.
l^;K^
is said to
UjLT
l^,.'
t_>^Uui"
^U^ Sii
1^'*^'*^* (*^
J^
be ^i^^\ ^3 15
^^
l!^ow,
is
first
^^j^ of
this
metre
called
J^y^^
(p-
314)
if
we
^^i--^'!*
we
shall find
which
list
is
In
tlio
we
find
is
made.
Now
in tlic Press.
314
AEABIC GEAMMAE.
^S'PP.
10X0 METRE.
315
(^'p').
-^
o
y'
If
's
"-5
Is
I-
'J
1-
o
CM
*3
M
.1^
1
til
r
v-0
4,
ll
"3
cs
-^'A
\
f
n
^
0"
^.
1.
:3^
1.1
'b
The examples
first
of 1, 2,
treatise of
technica, tlie
word
tJLJlLI
mind
,.^.
16
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
licences permitted in
tliis
The
the
wlif
quiescent letter of
both
^,'iJU
and
|^Lcli^,
making them
re-
spectively
tlif ,
J^ and
(I^Lll*.
foot,
[^l-rll*,
which becomes
foot,
Both
licence
same
such a
by another
is called ^'IjlC
Examples:
OC
1.
^^pj, as
O*"
^y
-'^
9''
O?
9"
<^
""
its fifth
quies-
a
2. <jis, as
>>
--
(>
O^
""
;'x
O?
yy
1^9
py
yy
o?o^
In the
first
hemistich the
Jj (see below).
Of the
occur.
1.
licence called
^lL, j^,
pj,
and jy sometimes
^y^\
LICENCES IN i_jLjT.
317:
where j and
JvIj
2.
pii'
^^IXI (l^^|.)'
l).
The
the
Jij.yi
differ.
But
since
two hemistichs rhyme together, and the rhyme concludes each distich in the poem, it follows that in the
first
first distich
Thus
oi'.<''
-,
,-,
and the
dji
1^
-^
1^
9
;
^^i-^ll*
,
but
in the
.
couplet the
*-J^"
^
^O''
/^ becomes ^Lcll^
The
y y
may be
9
as in the
ii
Kais says
S
y y
^oS-i
^o
yy
-^
^"^
S yy
*
Instances of
^^^
An
instance of
l^
^ y
.
318
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
--
o V >3-
"5
/y^
^<f 5-
^3 J
yTcO p^g
P'lg
IS [s
oi
I
,o
r
/'V
JD
=
<u
H
^
;^
J
P H M
-A
.a
W H
1 o
CQ
n
C3
V^
c4
V
<ll
00
a>
?^ .<
^
1% Ha
;-^
o
-j
be
^*\^
H.
xl
^
IS
.5
c-o
>>
o ^
EXAMPLES or SjS^
319
^^%^
^'.S.^'T
\
,
^^%^
\
"-
rr-(
'"^
.i^
:5
\
CO
^3
1
^
->\N
so,
Jr^
/^
">
vr9
-3^
n;j
o
03
P-(
'A
M
pi?
=i
^'^
X
'^
Nr9
3^
?\
"b
'^
pa
:*!} o
a
320
AEABIC GRAilMAR.
licences allowed are
,
The
1.
^jX
where ji and
2. 3.
j^
,2r^ in the
t>i^
^^,
in ^Uli
and ^;J%li.
and
first
Jli> in j^%l-'.
In the
the
,
(^^^^ the
as in
yL^ but
in the
first
cl^
only '^j^
is
is
allowed.
it
not allowed, or
would
El
^^.-.^iU
tl/^, but
El Akhfash permits
this ilJ^ is of
verse
is
YAEIATIONS IN
^^2\
^.
(i.e.
321
the loss
J"
0-^3
Ox-i?
O)'''-^
<i
>
-ii
vJ-
yxx
O^-'
'^
<^
y'
is
considered
by
of
all,
and few,
if
any,
examples of
it
jc^v^'I,
Vt
{^
it
(.
ij
1^
(^
C-C
^%li ^li
^;%li ^,Uli
^j%li ^J^li
^-^li
..A-ii
21
322
AEABIC GRAMMAR.
^'^
(.1
^ Pi
"*.
(-1
CO
> ^ (.T^
:3
d^
p?
^
^
Ph
P O
H
W
\13
^^^
CO
J'
-t)
'0^^
\I3
;-l)^
r?v
.0-
*I-,
a
^
'^
?0
^i^^iiia^^ oj
t>Jft1
^
(4^
::/
EXA:5rPLES OF
323
14-
%
5>
>">
w
J
>
.v'u
oil.
ra
CO
'A
.VJ 'v-i
'^i>,
\i^
\3
J-
o^
V3
<;
.J
^.J!>
'^J
;A-"
^i*)^
13
^1.
oJ
-3
.<;
u]n b o
x-^j
:o4
'I
j;:/-^
1!^'
^..
t4^
^1
J
324
ARABIC GEAMMAR.
licence called ^Ji-
The
metre
;
may be
and of the
and
^l.*!;:^ suffer
j!^, and
1.
^.^^ol.* suffers
^ and
-IE
-^
jl=s-.
^^
o o ^
c-o
^5
ox^-^
c-^
o-^
The
all
j^.
t-
y-
1^9
y>
<^
<^
'
yf
^'
^'
''
'
t^
'
<^
y 9
where every
!<
3.
iJ=:
(y
yv,p
iy
J?
-'oy
>>
x"-'
of
--Of
where
all
is
2^
^^
sometimes in the
fii'st
tl^
o>'
of
as
Oi-o
y y(y9
-'
o^;>o^>
-'^:''
-^
,'-''*
"--C/S
^ X
JU^^^-w^
I,
^^Ll<:r^
of
''
c:^l^
o^oy
U^UJ
Of o.'Of
L:^.iU.\
Of
y
'^'jj^^V.
of
Of o^
o y
so-*
OfO-'Oy
for
By ^^j>-
^Uili***^.
VAEIATIOXS IN l^^^TjS^
4.
325
J^:
^_^uL
^^Ly
^Ly
^Lli
^^
^If.
as
I
In the third
licence
is
^^.jS-
of this metre a
somewhat unusual
ceptible of ,2;r^
the foot
(^;.'i
becoming
^^^.t^*
= ^^S.-o
as
Abras
(jwAi'* u^*j
^j
^Ji
jXi
-ipy
O^O-O
9
i'^'
i?/o^
C-'_j^t_j-
Ji _j
y
y.
J.j1
y ^y
ij^
-"^
^y y
9 'iy
^f.C>
and some-
poem
is
the metre
''Jls>.
called
k^
^i:-*
as in the table.
,
The
may
326
AEABIC GRAMSTAR.
.'O-O
o ^
EXAMPLES OF^J^l^pC-
327
ca
is
328
AEABIC GRAMMAR.
licences
The following
tliis
1 ^~
i
\j ^
^ c ^
;l
-^
9^
where
2.
all
^^J^
Jib:
Q
9
-s^v/:
-i
.-o
'^
y yo
yy
'
>
>'
-y
-'
-Ji
jUj
0;>
>>
^^-^l^d
^
^^i^^'l-^
P
jJ,si
Oi>
ij\:il
P
^^^J
9
^X
yy
yy
The
K-
fii'st
tlJ^ of the
'^9
first
^^^ may
-I-
suffer
J^,
y"}.
as
y
t,yy
y
^ o
99
y S>Oy y
,^
^
y
-i^y
;>
?y
yi^9
yL,yy
o ^ -
y 9iyy ,_
ij
9y
^9
y y
'-'9
yy
LI/
5"^
'^
^^
"' I
^^'iLili^
If the
it -will
^J-sr*
is
but
if
the foot
^:J_cU^
occur once
it
sufficient to
stamp
it
as belonging to the
metre
J u.
o-o y
Similarly, if the
"Ci
Jju
it, it
9 ^y
-o
^ y
^c-o yo
x-
VAEIATIONS IN
J^^]^^.
329
Of the
il^s-j
1^,
u^^^i
tliis
lL
-^-
'
330
AEABIC GRAMMAE.
n3
)<i
-JV._
5-^
y
H
54,
H O
P^
J^
? g
.
-^x lO
[^1
VI
1_
V.
1_
n H O
U
'V
-i
"1
n'l
^^-^
H^^
'
EXAMPLES OF /ul^i.
331
O
(.1
-<^^l
-^l
73
i=l
t>\
CO
_3
\-1
1 N
^'^
'
^v^
o-O
o
05
'^3
^
"^J
"I
-A
-A
-A
3
1
] ^3>
0^
1^
^J
10-
v^
'^
^o=
b
_
i-
332
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
S, X o.
The
Jajj^
which may be employed in the ^jy^ and tl^J as well as in the body of the verse (Jil^).
and Jjrk
1.
'.Iwh^
c
,i'o'
o^
o ^
O^OO?
0?0-'0?
OCO^^^^
0?C^07
first ^ji^f-
O^C-'O^'
O/C'OJ'
^^*i^
^LsU::^ ^jLzXkx^
last foot
^J^^Xsc^
^Jk.[h^
jJxljb^
il^j-i,
i.e.
The
J^'i^,
suffers
j^\, and
contains
in the
The
following
(from
El
Baha,
Zoheir)
lS^], and
An
foot is
ir,
^
'"
o.
If
jUk^i occur
of the foot
to be
/Lo.
first
Thus the
verse of the
\ ,
but the
y P
-^
Kasidah
is
O-^^O-'
OXCy^)
X"
X^ --O ^
1^
t^,^ ^
VAEIATIONS IN J^lLjl^^.
333
OC^O^
JO^
Oi"
--^i"
Of
^^J'
o^
^^ 9
t,
py
o^
.'
o ^
-i
>
i.
^ ^^
334
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
p y^<^/.
EXAMPLES OF ^ji^\
335
i^
O
>^1^%
<3
i
1
^
^
Q
o
03
_j.\
s^
\
^j
^3
l-i^
\
ill
1^
-^
J-
, .
336
?o^
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
fJcJ
and
sJs^ are
XX
where
2.
all
tl^
suffer ^Ijl.
cJ::
i^
XX
i^
^^
O9
^^
^^
X
where
rox
all
but the
*
'
cl/^I^
suffer lJb^.
Jox
(V^j j^j
1.
(^^r^
:
^^^ V^ and
-^
Ji
i"
o-o
XX
f f
xxo-o
-ix
Here the
and the
^.
j
first
foot suffers
X,X
^'i^^cll^
,
becoming
^,l^xl^
in J,lc is doubled
by
I^^>-M)
OXO
*'tS
XX
>
^xcxx'gi
Here the
first ;t
first foot
becomes J^\i
and
fifth
*
of i.L^ll^
X X
3.
Here
J-ill,
is
of the measure
first
^pSt
for
and seventh of
"^^sSsC*.
VARIATIONS
4. (.j^
EST
^J-^l^pT.
Q 37
Where
verse,
and
number
of feet
by the
licence called
^^,
*
see p.
Instances of
<._
22
OOO
OQ
AEAEIC GRAMMAR
i""!)
-(J
73
d
c;4
CO
r3
ID
> O
o
\3
^J
<
o
<\
V)
.-^^
1-1
1)
l^
C3
^^
^
f'<St<
EXAMPLES
O'E
y:^)\
^",9 OOt
ta
^y
-S.-^
\
1^
>
111
The
first
first
^^ may be used
;
alternately in a
poem composed
but
rhyming
couplets, each
an instance of
and the
,^^yi
Sddih
tv^cl
Bd^im'.^
*'
<5
O ^
^UaJl^P
C-O^
^
-^
y 9
4 Wj
o
u.^^
.
J -^-^^
x-
4^ J
^^^^
\
cr^l^
^^-^
J-^
^ ^o-o^
-'O-'O
-^<^*
>* -^
J^l^^_^iill^yl
i^
J^l;
-Jl
tl/^J-X^
;__J^^XJ
Jj^J'*
_J
(J/J^S^j
o ?
t,^
a.
'-
is
sometimes
,J.^:liLJ,
with or without
^J^*-'?!*,
^,
or
JIX
(see table, p.
.
310), sometimes
and sometimes
such a licence
*
(J^.jJ
Eejez
is
is
allowed.
series of
el
Uibblriyeh,
342
AEABIC GRAMMAR.
EXAMPLES OF
J<^51
43
U ^
S
-,
r>
</3
^
J
x^
X
>
\^.
^-^
-/
..^
M
P4
-ej X X :=^
1-,
I^^J
X_J
XJ
-^J
Ix-
T
a ?
^1^
X
O
M
O
(.1
3-
Mi
Of
1
^ p
ifo
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
^
the
^^
i-Jl:>-jj
,2r^> <^j
^^^
J^
occur.
"T
y'
'TO''
In the
j^-aL* c_->H.^.
u
In the
c:;^%^
c;^%^
cJ^^
c;i%li
,:r^%li
O^ ^
iT
o^
-^AW^ C_^-^.
51
''
.^
.f
c ^
i,
9 ^
2.
^:
>*
x>'
^
-;
UUi
l^
%^
'i^
[^'
^i-^li
c:.^^li
c^'^li
o.
lSw<j
c^
^5
o >?^
^Lii
cLLi
^%u
^ ^
-3
-o
VAEIATIOXS IN
J^J\^^.
345
And
5-C
may
le
employed.
^li
^%li
^%li
J^li
^^li ^iLli
346
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
H
(<
^\
O s
"i"^;
-S'i^
?""-'
o J
-I
!l<!
^
->
\1D
Oi
r;i
^
o>
H H O H <
^'
"J
-J
348
ARABIC GEAMMAE.
The
o ^
S^
1^^
-"
OP
-'p
c^
t/j"
--
op
^9
op
^^
o-*
^OP
O^'O-'O-'
(j
f-'
opo^op
oPO^oP
In the 4 th j^^.
^
c^ o I
Oi'P-'
0P0--0^
OP
^y
>'.'
-'
^ ox
'-
oS^"
OP^x
PO--OP
OP
^P
2.^:
o ^
-^
^.^
C5
O-'
^XO*'
^y
^ ^
53-0
VAEIATIONS IN
^^\j=^,'
349
TO
.'
*
3.
J-^
_
oy y y
s^ ^
''
s
-'
py^ y
...
y^ y
I
J^jiT^.
^icli
.^
^-Axi
>=r.
^y
c;^^
-'-
t>^^
d^ d^
350
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
EXAMPLES OF
Lj^S
-I
351
-I
CO
'^*^
.V3
'1
a.
o
GO
^'l ^^J
^:1
">
^^=
-N
?^
-6%
:-.
\3
U
^
;l
n
o.\
'^'J-
r<
852
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
The
^
_
^'yf-^
and ^CX
Si.-'
1.
^j^
X i?
X ^
"
^^jyjcl^
LiSiy6
J^^
J^^
(-::j^_j*i
j^Ia^
In 2nd
X 9^ ^^/i.
O
>
^^t/o
^^
In 3rd
ij^^^^
VAEIxiTIONS IN
j^^\
j=s^..
oDd
z.lU.
O^^
y''
y^-' ^
jLai^
C;^J.Jti
^^^^
,.I.riu..w<
Cl^^iUi
^jJ^
23
354
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
EXAMPLES OF
1,
u_a-.;;Ls:'
355
3.56
ARABIC GEAililAR.
JO
-'
Licences: ^^<^,
1.
(^, and
JsLi.
1^^
is
tl^,
as well as in
Oi'^-'
O?
^y
r^9 ^ ^
y^
X-y^O
-^
^(Jtj^^i^c; ^^-^^
c?^
CJ^*
o^
-^^
O^^
11'
-^
J,t^
In second
9 ^
tl^
^ O ^
''
4.''
^o^
*y
^ ^o-o
^
OC^
i^Lts
L5="J^
o'^
i^'Lcli
^^JJ
O?^ ^ j^^^li
^Ij:?^^
O?
V.^^J
OC-
O-'O^ O? jJ _i:i^.
CO^
_i::>A<*^
^jj^rli
l*^
-'
o^
-i
o5
sM
^
y cr?
-'Isli
9^9 ^'lij"
P
Pl^
"
L
^
>-/.i I)
O^O
C^ O
J_ix,,*
CJlcli
3.
/iLi:
^
oy ^
1^9
"
''
'
CxO
ylcli
J?-U^
^jJ'Lr'i
;!.
VARIATIONS IN
o
t-iJ^irl
,:sr
357
<7
f^-.x*lj
^j\j^\ L-J
\j^\
^j,^
L'^
U^
*i:>-J^j<_>
l_Jlijj
^jirr.
^;.'IcIj
becoming
^^ij^i-^
in the
cl^.
353
AEABIC GEAMMAR.
VAEIATIONS IN
cjLi^l^^.
o y
I-'
''
OOU
In
this
metre the
^_s
and
This rule
called ^j^^*.
is is
sup-
o5^ c ^ X
where the
ji.;^
suffers
i-Icf
jki)
and
C^
occur.
sU^
*Lj
i^LuJt_^A
ill
jj~o
first foot
becoming ^^U.
^^^
i^9
^y
L,9
9*^-^
3G0
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
YARIATIONS IN
^:x^^T .:^
301
i_J
and
tlio
of
c:^*i'.ti.
cannot both
retained toofethcr.
"'^Ir
The following
the
is
an instance of the
dropping
of
They
retained
togc.'tiiei-,
as in
the verse:
l.''^
j\x:Ji^
^ 9U
<-
^<^
<^
d^j*xLi
^
-'
^^xx:,^.^
Cl^ift.^>^
''
P O -^
V C-
'(_
c A^i-iJ^
in
classical poetry.
362
ARABIC GEAMMAR.
N <1
4
.q^
\
1.1
'
JL)
H
ft
NJD
<
-\
o
ft
1^
W H
L'-b
li
o
\
J.
y i^pu^
EXAMPLES OF
3G3
n O
D
>^,
"^3
V.
11
o
^^
-^
U
^_5
o
-.A
."^
^
^
V
t"^
P4
i1-
'1
-:?'
J
X-
-i
364
This metre
the
first is
ARABIC GEAMMAR.
its full
form as in
?
example.
licences are allowed
The following
^^,
k-ai,
and
-'
e;r^
^^'Lxi
;^?^
j^^'ljLJ
jjS ?;^-^*
2.
^i^:
3.
jil^
in the first
and third
foot
^L^\^
^^%lj
?JU^^
^^J^^
^3%li
C<iJ^l
J^U^
J^li,,
also occur?,
but
may
also.
An
example of
this licence is
Ci-O'
-^
5^
--
^^
VAEIATIONS IN
^^'
is
|^Jj*I*
I (
3G6
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
^^.
ns-
^"^.
a
.-\..
^^1
<
r^
I
Ph 1^
I
H w H
"3
;:
^
3
o
J
K1
^1
--,
,2^
r^
^3,
pa
u H
O a
'3
T.
S <
it;
EXAMPLES OF
367
'?
"J
v^
']
v.:^s
\
"0
-J
<;
o
CO
^3
'>^
W
&^
"J
'J
"b
;3
n o
la
H'^
:.
^-s,
y-
W
^')
oil
:>
C-)
111
->
>
"
08
AEAETC GRAMMAR.
5 c is t_J;i.sr*
'.
When
the
cl^
the
^j^^y^
may
also
suffer
is
an alternation
^
K,
thus
O/'^
i^f?^
^99'
1^
9 9
i,9
9^
99^
J_ji
i^
j*i
^^x^
J^.O
J_j.o
J^
J^'e
J^
C/^''
L,
''
1^9 9
^99-'
C^-*
\^9 9
O/C^
^^!_jxi
99^
J_j
J*-*
j^!_ye
J_j.o
J^.O
Jxj
Jj*i
4_J^'
J^li
OP^^
jU^
9 9:^
4^^ji
jl'j
P ^
J^
9
w>l-u*i
jl^:*
jlsl
9^
99^
J^xi
99^
9 9 y
J^*i
J_jxi
Jj.<e
J^.o
J^
J^
Jjxi
SC'^
iTc^
J.J
also
be used.
1.
^
<^9
o C
py
9^
1^9
9'
oy
9-'
i.
9y
9^
09 9^
O / o^
<Jy^
Jy^ Jy^
J^:'
fii'st
Jy^
foot is
Jy^'
J^^i Jl>6
where the
"^J^.
VArjATIONS IN t__JjlO]^^.
SG9
2.
f):
Jy^
J)^
Ji'^
J^^
'-^
J>^
Jjo
.
J^
J*^
is
24
370
ARABIC GEAMMAR.
EXAMPLES OF
CJ.1.>^^1
o^l Oi
372
There
foot
is
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
a modification of this metre, in which every
c
becomes
^-1^
is to
it
make
is
the verso
and
then called
i^\j^\
J^
spout,
or
^^iv^\ ^^-J
"striking the
The following
C'v. t
is
an example
bells
373
(203).
last
The
Lili, or
Ehyme,
is
'
two quiescent
five
letters of a verse.
There are
number
last
of vowelled letters
the'
two quiescent
Name of Rhyme.
letters, viz.
371
U,
s
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
(pronouns), unless preceded
by a long vowel,
as
end in a vowel,
it
this is
always considered
;
whether
be written so or not
when
it
i^fethah,
the the
is
dhammah
and
This additional
may
take
s"
after
it
^
for its
^, as ^lL
for
^y^^vowel
has
its
^^,
as the
\ ,
and
\
^
it
j^^'
>
jrr-f"
-1^
U"
is
separated from
as in
The
J-ri- j
may
differ in
every verse.
(205).
VOWELS OF THE
Lilj
J"^
oll3 is
is
by
of the pronoun
when
it
1^ J
the kesrah
t_f j^--j
cClns
when
the Ls}^
is
^^*,
and
vowel of the
letter
preceding the
the fethah^
lIjJ;,
latter,
as
kesrah,
and
and^,-^.
'
POETICAL LICENCE.
375
In the ridf
the word S-^
and
may
is
c^U*
\
with ^-k
,
in the 1^^^"
q-v.
as a j_5j,
and
fctliaJi
The ^ilj
is
called
dJilk*
when
it
Ix^^ when
Iji^j^
it it
.
when
?'**
JLu-jy
when when
it
has a
i'j^-*
it
has neither.
lS^
(206).
faulty eiitme.
is
Any
called
ZJ^ "a
jlL;
fault."
The Arab
writers on Prosody
enume-
of vowels in the
^\^\
changing the
rhyme
in the course
poem
1^
c^-'^^
so connecting a verse
^ ''\^\
y
first is
-.3
fy'
? ^
j^\
(207).
'ij^ja
POETICAL LICENCE.
The only
is
poetical licence
which
is
considered not
to be a blemish
that of
376
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
declinable, as in the
this is
'
noun
example on
is,
p.
103.
The reason
why
it is
approved of
The Arab
in order to
may
be expected,
Changing a
p. 13), as ^J'^y.
JU
for
^J'^^ Jit
j^\l
]^ 'ji^ f^
changed on
be a
quiescent letter, as
^!^
for
1j^
y
;
for ^j^\j
u^^,
etc.
el-Jcatd altogether,
as IkJ\ for
cl-
^r^\
of C<
,
for
^^
.
..
The
when
interrogative,
is
frequently omitted,
as M ^j,^ lor
U .^:^
Other and more violent licences, such as the lengthening a short vowel, or vice versa
;
tenwm and
APPEN^DIX.
Jlr^l units.
9
^ o i
''
^\s^]
j^UjJ^
inchoative, subject.
<JLi\ S:~ t
Jk^J
commencement
pened.
jL^ll
t_$-A!
enunciative.
merical order).
(J
llo.'!
mg
by
^i O-O/'' 0'
in-
d.5:ull
i.e.
d.-^^
the
.?.s^<?r
of fethah,
\
U^'
J..sr*^^
\ ownership, speciality.
\j^
^_^ui>-l
4_>
the context.
the alphabet.
especial.
Jl^l
cJ-
relation of connexion.
in
~\A^\ <LI>-1
answer
to
tentative question. ^ o i
^-.i:?-i
a dull pro-
extraneous
anj' part of a
])roposition
etc.,
^1 ""-I A.\.y\
,
hollow.
* letters.
378
AEABIC GHAMMAE.
?
^ o o
^i
Xllj^
insertion
with nasal
A\3j^\
XJlkiL^'l
expressing disdain.
extension.
sound; suppression of the (j before J, t^, or ^, which are then doubled, but a slight nasal
ij\xx^\ metaphor.
^_fj\jc^\ metaphorical.
sound
iiP
is still
heard.
i ^ o
^
Lj lxx-;\ indicating the employment
of means, instrument, etc.
^litj.-;].
^o-o
S "^
as-
elevation.
aid.
jCm-:].
^-h^\ L5^^^
letter
j^lijWssimilaeluding
all
the individuals of a
ij^\
all
^\.^=>'
o'j^\
including
the properties of a
depression.
interrogation.
woid.
^Li:;--:],
^J^:^ Jtji:4
\
(li^i-^J^
assimilation
JUii.^-^], future.
t_jlli:j-jj.
of the last letter, even when not quiescent, with the same letter
introducing a
new
pro-
ceding.
<L-Lj\ (consonants)
J\
CU
S o,
of the aorist.
Jliia-:]. difficulty of pronunciation.
iLi
dj
><-;],
noun
of instrument.
A..
)\
exception.
tj^ -:].
<jj\.ja-j|.
serving
to
retain
or
ticle
correct
enunciated.
GLOSSARY
c-Si
0"F
GEAMITATICAL TEEilS.
J
*~:'
379
nominative of
"^
*"
jJ-.ii_:Jl
A-j].
comparative or su-
L:;^iib
<
,;
<J ^
"
perlative.
<)il?-
^h
-J],
concrete noun.
^^
CPlJ
(Loxs)
j,y^
\
.!.
t^Axl
Ji numeral. '
1
*-j\
noun of
(*-^i
species.
concrete noun.
"yt^:5-
t^=r
collective ge-
abstract
noun of
neric noun.
quality.
'X X ^
f
'*--l
t
noun of time
<^k.]\^ *-cl
noun of exaggeration,
x-
intensity or excess.
^-.is
Jt^\
a real noun.
^^^
k_^/j.jJl
or epithet.
xO.<3
P
285 (183).
j,\<z^
<-],
J.liJ
_
-jj. agent.
finitive.
o c. -o Co. ^jjtij \ ^^J\
noun of
action,
-,<ii
^ 9
-So,
Jk.^.-*
^o^o-o
^\
i O
diminutive noun.
i X O
S^iiU
j^\
noun of abundance.
of unity (of time).
--^
I implied or understood.
^-'Oo c o
^\^1
>*-ji
noun
noun, pronoun
-5
=j*a^
5-
o x ^ O
jju^\
r
>>
*;1.
i^t^
O
''
^y
X
0-3
00
x/iO
and
infinitive noun. io jS s
.
noun opposed
particle.
to the verb
J^jtA/*]
iJo-Ji
X X 0-*3
i'
-.'
noun
the
of unity.
X O
ticiple.
t_-J-u:.^^
o-ci
.Ijij^l
*l/-j\
demonstrative
-^^ (
noun
of relation.
pronouns.
Jljti^\ ^U.-;^ adverbs which per-
o>> o.
4:j1
cies).
form
the
functions
of
verbs.
j!
in
which a thing
noun of
contained.
i.
^JiJS^~ Jl
accident,
q.
J Ju^/.
JjoJ\ *U.-.l
numerals.
S8U
0>
ijJ-J
X**
-^
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
-<^^o ^
^
ft..
Ls}^
^J^li
^"^
a construction
as
cpi
i.J
^
two
^}^\
proper
name formed
of
nouns in a
OU-sl^ relation of the subject to the
state of constniction.
attribute.
4_jJuj1^ a
of
jU^i
s
iilJ:>]
implying.
general.
J^l. being
see
U-i| in poetry, using a long for a short vowel (see also p. 374). a yo-'c^^ ^ ^c-o S ^ C
expressing the idea of agent and patient at the same time.
aJLL^
J 'v<e-l}
its
add-
original object.
'^r* J'^^
l*l.Kil^
inchoative verbs.
vowel which
JlxJl
verbs signifying
not written).
wonder.
;j^i^
1
jUii
Verbs
of sense
or
s
\lk^l technical,
feeling.
f
J-tfi root
V^
'
JUil
J
inchoative verbs.
(vrr^'y
C^^Il Jlxil
verbs im-
iX^'^ radical,
t^-^Lsl radicals.
JUil
verbs denoting a
o'<
mental process.
^y
surd verb
= j_CL doubled.
state
StS '"'
J OS
oS
JUil,
.^ t-JJiJl JL-oi.
i.ZJ\ya\ interjections.
j*jjlj
^^1 JUil
verbs of praise
^"^\
connexion,
and blame.
of con-
struction of
two nouns.
verbs.
381
^<-5
9<i-0
'L^\j
^^\!t^\
incomplete verbs,
%.q^.
J-,.ciiJl
^^\ when
signifying
comparative or su-
-'OS
see c ^A.^
f'-'i-
c_i..,^^l.J\
c^al^^
a formula em-
and the agent when the former agrees in number with the latter, in violation of the rules given on
p.
180 (101).
i,j>~\
A abbreviation for
etc.
^\
^\x^\ depriving
its
(a verb, etc.)
of
grammatical influence.
(_ii\
Lx^]
the
added
to a
word
i'J-i.^
<._
^j^
isolated
///",
t.^'.
if,4-.2Ji-
IaJ^ short
?/,
the ter-
mination
^,
see p. 74.
itJJjJv^K^ t-jjJl
long
.
?/,
the ter-
mination
*|
882
)
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
y
?0**0
\
o^o-o
^
^^
JilJ
^^ i^V^ J^'
Jja
substitution
<UxiJ dual.
LUi\
substitution
correcting
despoiling
a word of
its
a former statement.
i ^\
substitution
grammatical influence on
i^\
jj -sT /
what
follows.
cKJ^ Jj^
^Lw^vrsT'
being homogeneous,
allit-
eration, a pun.
uJl^^ ^^
J'^J
substitu-
or in-
j^^sP
to express disdain.
'i'j^\ ^-A2sC"
full value.
its
*UJ indeclinability.
j^Lj explanatory adverbial complement.
CLi
t-jLi.^ making
light,
writing a
(_iJiJ a
series of distinct
words
indicating one and the same object from the same point of
S^
9
.
<y
" j\j
view
the termination Cl^.
*^-J-'
synonyms.
}V
,,,
compassion.
hope.
^jij^
^\j
the termination
iJ.
,3
^u
J^-''
appositive.
/r
o'
**rJ-
J cutting
word,
of a
as
Jti*
,j].
for
making
energetic.
tl,<}C. 'Ji\:
putting (a
iJ:^
Lj-J
\j
feminine.
j*r{/ / writing
the numerical
(a
negation)
completely
^
s
>'-
J chaunting, intoning.
<-
^.
^^
distinguishing, explaining.
383
|uj
y.^
tive.
X xo-<3
spocificative or discrimina-
S9
^^
jjJk>U
adding
the
double a
itself.
letter.
to
Jl.
J^\
"
fluence of various antecedents upon their complements in one sentence; see p. 264 (1G6).
^l:J grammatical
in-
^1,^1:^ harmony.
^-x^" diminutive.
v_ ^ =^ admiration.
,
J,-liJ" making
[^jjxf
is
indefinite.
2uXxj rendering
transitive.
sound
see p. 6 (4).
jSxj impossibility.
_.''
appositives.
j\sxj numeration.
f^jXj
ambiguous.
(j-JjO leaving in suspense.
^_pt
*'t
making
definite.
^^j
triliteral.
XX
-SJ
X
'
Lj abbreviation
lated to us."
for
Lj
Jjs-
he
re-
j^ki change.
S
~j^^ii^
_xi'
^-sUj
biliteral.
Koran).
l:_
{JuJCi dilatation.
5"
-^
^
U)JJiJ" virtually.
abbreviation for
it-^:=^
plunil,
ox
virtual.
for
J-i\=^
3y. J^"
scansion.
xO-<3 ^ X o X
J^W XX
jjS^
LjAJ'
J. i^
J^ ^ preposition with
its
noun.
^*^^
jjl^
'^
primitive (noun)
permissible.
O *
P
O X
ijAJ hoping.
,^
abbreviation for
",jCij confii-ming.
plural of a plural.
384
iXstT denial, negation.
*\j!>-
ARABIC GEAMiTAR.
iiji^^y^ lUIJcLLk:?- proposition
of two phases.
compensation.
mark
that
above
it is
^-b^
tion.
signify
^Ji:
a_L4.:s-
adverbial sentence, or
the
mark
(see
^S^).
verbal sentence or
j_/^
^-Au.CJ
O
plural.
fi
c^ o
!
-^
proposition. S ^ ^O S^ O P
"
J-'*^
,?
broken plural.
plural of a plural.
'*>-'
'^"if-^ 'U.->:s-
inchoative proposi-
^0*i^3
\
tion.
^-^s:
jJU:
^'^
f-'**=r
/
'U-i^l
^^>^
H'^ IL^^r
sound
or
regular
sentence
which" follows
the
^^-*
^--^J^
'
plural.
^^^\sr
formed
letters
^j-x^ i\u^^
incidental proposi-
tion, parenthesis.
wuA*
^j
^f--^*sj
which stands
act predicated.
J-fi
O''
S
**
<^
I
<L*_c.^^
<L-.^^?-
<u_^*j-
qualificative pre-
position.
..0
,,'99
..''"-^
9^9
L:j[^\ <lL^
position.
enunciative pro^u*:5>-
gender.
response, apodosis.
t_-?^jj>-
X.-.^-j\
^lL*^ nominal
^Sas>-
proposition.
^^\
&^)\JLj\
c-J^.:>-
apodosis of a com-
productive
pro-
mand.
>-uJiJ
1
or originating something.
<L.Jl*- <LLir>- proposition express-
c->l^:?- apodosis of
an oath.
^ylJ s-J
\
\^ apodosis of a condition
or hypothesis.
kJOO
H y 'C-O
\
y 1^%
n.xi^
ing
*;!=-
^\jii\
qv.
<^
aorist of
future particle.
'
apocopated mood.
^j^\
<
9 ^
j^
pronouncing clearly.
unites.
y o 1^.0
9
(
t^
^\-^V\
y y
<i-M^ls,
O"o
1
pl.
i^r*'^ margin,
state,
gloss.
^jIL|x^-|
JU-
circumstance,
;
or ad-
tion.
.'
verbial condition
present tense.
'
o o c-o
(j
/^jb.^-|l
tide.
j^5^ interrogative
par-
adverb explanatory
'
S y
or
f
'i-
-^
of condition.
t=_il:s-c.^-|
'^y=^
ij
particle
intro-
/
9
JS y
S^
-it's-
?
(
ifJ>^--
*^-'^-."J^
J^
(
of condition.
i_i-tf^J
o;*J-<?
? ^ y
k-_.--.J^\
5^5^
of
se-
^iLl*::^M
Jlr^ adverb
which
is
a cause.
L_j*s-*.n
Jl^>-
condition of the
<-C)
-.3
thing qualified.
<Ljys>- accident. S 9 9 C_?j A;^ coming into existence (an
act).
expgetlcal or ex-
planatory particle.
y
Ictter of dilatation.
.i^-A\
-"J-
>-
particle of proxi-
''ii^s>-
apocopation.
mity.
O'Cj-^
tf
'jL^r.].
^A:>-
violent suppres-
yj:^\
^J-
Ictter
of repetition
t
sion.
{j rd).
particle, letter.
iip^
5 \-Jx:^\
-7-
particle of hope,
...II
particle of warning,
j=^
ij=>-
preposition.
25
3SG
AEAEIC GRAMMAR.
expressing
^^^jTuJ^
particle
'"^"^^J^
i\3ll^^ >tr^
ST)s
^o^^tive particle,
]
)
interjection.
J;- particle of
^^
(^^j>-
L-J^
tide.
compeUative par-
J.^
v>- disjunctive
particle.
lSjZ>- vowel.
<LJl:j
dJ^
vowel of indeclina-
bility.
(__;..- letters, particles,
l?-*]^
'Lr="
conditional particle.
XjU!^^
tion,
^
Ji.- particles of
.e.
annexa-
prepositions.
9 9 9
^^^^
uJf-
soft letter.
^ -O
i^\,=s:rV\ i_J.rS-
letters
of
de-
^Jd^ 't;^
particle of complaint.
flection
(J andj).
P 9 9
^o o-O
,lio1\
'-^Jy=^
particles of disap-
probation.
jl:sr^^ ^
<
j..=*!
affirmative par-
tides.
ditional,
partitive,
and corro-
0>'C'-^
P
I
9 9
j,
borative particle.
y_
n
J_\J^ U y^y
^
in>
=
o
perrautative letters.
sjj
-o
>
u-
j;- conjunction.
particles
'
^j
!:X
uJ^^
particles
which
of inciting or invitation.
^JLs^j\
ing conviction.
.S's^\
^^j=^
-o
I
particles expressing
STlijf
li'p(
the
two
initiative
particles
Jj and ^^-)-
;.'
A^J\
OtS -0
ing assent.
9 9 9
particles (JJ
and
^^)
jU^|\
'
J ^=ry-^^
^^^
the two
j^^
J,
^^o-O
387
parti-
(-^L^-JbJl
^i-^>.
real feminine.
genitive. -O 9
(J^-^\
iJ*j=>-
letters articulated
it
were
historical present.
(J^^
Jo
^
Jj .-
guttural letters.
servile letters or in-
olxs-
direct narration
of a past imperative.
.
'J
i__J r=^
cL-.iJ.:>.
crements.
'*J
guttural.
^ O
>'
L .-iJl <**P^
i
conditional particles.
t'u^sa*- guttural.
-O
99
-.i-^Jl J^
conjunctions,
> w\Ji/*Jl
weak
9 9 9
letters.
first.
J'
>
O y'O-O Px ^ o -^
^
short letters.
__?.^:.^S
-^^
the predicate in
the accusative.
dliiljij
1
or d-iliil^
i^jZ^
trembl-
So'
Jji>- genitive or
ing or clacking
o^
-<:>
dependent
case.
letters.
Ii2,ht
9 9
^^-111
without
tesM'ul.
\J^
<A^
1
U.^
quinquelitcral.
^J/
used in
(ar-
_J J
0-0
9 9
the alphabet,
s
9 9
UJ
precative.
*J,^J principal forms.
'-
s-
conjunctions,
short letters.
c_J^.jiIl
gi^\
i. j>- -a
^ ^Uaji
deprecative.
9 9
i\^\
jJs^js^
reckoning by the
letters.
memory,
i.q^.
1^^^
analogy.
and accountants.)
3S8
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
a raDid
/j
blame.
Ax.
J\j3
ji
quadriliteral (vcrb^.
triliteral (verb).
(^Uj
tense, time.
Xj^iill
"^
I
quiescent
(letter)..
J
*jL: sound.
iLk)^^
bond
(a conjunction).
c^lS
gib J
quadriliteral.
as
cause
the
noun serving
to
complement
the
adjec-
tbc pronunciaisS>-^\
u;-"-"^^
tion of a letter).
^y^J
'
jji^
_.j
~,_ relating
:
to the cause.
<;
-'
abbreviation
''^'^^
j-^-' rhythm.
i2,C: the
"may God
him
mark
showing that a
letter is
quiescent
who
are dead.
i.q.
quiescence
^\Ji\
'^y^
t_^J.j
a privative sense.
irregularity,
r^\
>-ji
punctuating
and
cIjLj
absence
of
analogy.
-^
o ^ ^X-*o /
oJJ
1
<!L5j
"May God
him!"
be satisfied
^^^j with
,~_::U-j irregular.
dSJl^
(j--j!
pronouncing the
CJ
^1
as (jw.
indicative mood.
J^ju>^
pJ
-J
,
rare,
uncommon.
cyphers.
that which distracts or di-
AjM
verts a
word from
its
original
vowel
is
which
grammatical influence.
not written; fa
|Ui)l ).
stronger
than
C Uj
SSO
ti-wi)
assimilated to (analogue
iL_^^
a^-w)
S'
-3
<"
abbreviation
for
^ja^j.%,
"^Ujt5<-j]. tLwi)
1
analogy in use.
analogy in having
' ^.
5<^
J^jUbij.
cU^
Koran\
-^
<^^ analogy
JO
iLjj
in sense.
o^
"xJj
analogy in primitive
formr
jS^
S
<i
two max-
illaries
meet.
y y
(letters)
<^'-i,jsr'
formed
m the upper
the
cavity of the
mouth between
,
{^'^SL'^
person.
i^j^^
'^l ':?"-'
nunciation. S o^ -i commentary.
^j^ conaiuon,
390
j>
ARAETC GRAMMAR.
x^o
?
co-o
\
S
plurals of
i.e.
c ^/.^J
yi:^^ '^-*r?^
--_o P .^JLU^
<^^y
.^^
detached pro-
of
?
X3)f (2)^(1).
p<^
j^^^-*
t'^^.a:^
jr^^
detacht-d
U^
?-s '
>-tf
^J the
,
^o
jj-iii^^.
detached pronoun.
vowel
c
^
rr-;>*
itself.
1.
pronoun.
J^C ^
j_^l>^Sl^-4>tf
L)
abbreviation for
^IL^
an abso-
expressing desire.
expression of desire.
.jlsM
first
-j^
affixed
pronoun of the
-> 9
'L.-Ji?
or second person.
t-'ii
^\^\j0^
t^'-^rPP
i.q.
^\J!l^\j^^.
-fc'Ar
J..J=AJ
,-^
nounced.
I
ration.
j .1?
adverb.
^>^iJ
.-.4-J i^'.
j^LiJ\^*.^ (the
i^UjJ^ ^ ^l.C*J^ u-Jyl? adverb of
^^\
).
pronoun
jj\i j.;^
added to
an expressed pronoun.
J^
adverb of time."
adverbial predicate in
J^i?j^n
jel'
noun that
tive noun.
;:x:Uu^
.xj
u_j^ an
a proposition
\
^^
pronoun hidden, or
innate
verb).
(in
S y
^ P
So^
s\i.,J^^
^izj.M^ j.^;^
Q..^-*
r,
the
Jb*u.^
jK^
.'
attached pronoun.
.-.4>i
understood.
of place.
O^ f
UPS
attached pro-
J^
aL^^
adverbial.
indicating
adverbial
con-
dition of place.
i>J^ adverbs.
391
O ^
t
((
by
-SJ
-o
particles. 7 o ^
c abbreviation for
-^y*
'
name
tion.
t>iii
contextual apposi-
works).
ji\s. preterite.
iSs.
motive
in Prosody
^jc^iz accidental.
" defect."
grammatical
i^c
^ 1-
in a state of
dJ
.xi-J
conjunction.
jj.^l.
governing word.
its
objective
J^JbiJ J^\s.
grammatical regent.
contained in a
indicative
of
genders
qualificative sentence
the ante-
and numbers.
jX^ proper name.
^^AS. governance, regime.
cedent.
.- preterite.
,' . t'kv*^^
^z the quality
of being a foreign
il^
^_^IJ
noun.
per name.
foreign in origin.
jj\
_i,t
j-^
^
^'
irregular,
not
Lst^"^
*
OwJ -^O
-cJl
K^^^
name
of
words.
foreign origin.
d^s. number.
jjlj: deviation (formed
cLxU~o J-^
irregular governing
by
altera-
words.
'LJ^i
J-^^^-c
regular governing
JLas-
jAi
real deviation.
fictitious or con-
words.
Ji^jj~- -.r.
J A;:
ventional deviation.
j2y:
offering, invitation.
* abbreviation
'*
for
/jLJI
aJji
LLJi\jtKS- tons.
t_ g'^
^-
apposition.'
ju^
mind.
j^l-J
^?-,Ish\
cence.
Jk^'J^
external reminis-
tiuu.
392
/U^jjl J>^\
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
or ,^^J^\jJ\ Jv*^^
substance
Jc:ls agent.
a><>Lc.'j
^J
jIc aorist or future.
')\.
^:s:\J the
vowel
Jj
h\s. term, limit, extremity.
unit.
and numbers.
J.xi verb.
j^
future.
~ .. .. ^ "^. i-_fi,-ib>--i
~^*
conventional, fictitious.
J'tj or
^^ J*i
indeclinable
verb.
;yi
tional feminine.
conven-
.s.^^
jL.tJ
verb of wonder.
Jlj
.-i.
imperfect,
weak
verb.
b^l
^,ji!
Jjo
conditional verb.
-^
not neuter.
<*lj'
Jje
perfect verb.
SfC^-t
j^
intransitive.
J-ciJ separation,
sentence, paragraph.
.
t-
ceptible.
abbreviation for
and
^l-^^-i.
mood
of verbs
when an
it
alif
ri
intervenes between
last radical.
and the
contested
oath,
not derived
2i^
-i indeclinable.
isjj
shortness.
^"j^i
intransitive or neuter.
abbreviation for
.V^ -J^
*i
?>
o'Jo
Koran).
tLi-i
abbreviation for
<^*
<kj\\.s:^
slight pause,
according to the
when
it
by a
^.)
pressing a vowel.
-
or Jj.
O
C-O
1
Cv
^ o ^
(j.w.ijs'
"
j^Ui
tive, see p.
254 (157).
td
analogy.
(^\j.'i\
^^
(J.^'^^
occupying
no place in the
analysis. i'jjl^ 1 expletive
i?
graaimatical
il.
p.
f 'L.^ o yoS
oyo
IS
iyS
~.
triliteral
the inchoative J,
*S
^^
i'ljls"^! *ii hypothetical expressions.
^^ the imperative
\
j.^
-o
;>
^ the J
the the
P 0''c-<3 y o
-^
o ^
<?
''
--
jk^^.uSl 1*^ o
J*^-?^
1*^
.js*'^^ culi'
an expression
*il
the
of the particle
see p. 172.
of reproof or anguish.
ttJJjliJl
^\
.
the separating
J.
^o-o /
tLU^ metonym,
A^'i
soln'qicot,
*/.JiJ\
''
z*^
the
introducing the
subject of an oath.
nickname, familiar
-u^LJJ tLirj^n j*^l the
""
name.
<L-i_-i
inlro-
quality.
304
(_fljjcJl /*i
-
AEABIC GRAMMAR.
the definite article.
P
-'O-O
\
'^
"
*JLS
^
t_-'U=f-
z*^
the
J introducing
S 9^
At
'
known.
^^/j jj\ U the t* of duration.
LJ_j
)!
<>^.rj-
(!'
the
J
^
responding
and "if
not."
i^^
f'-S
j^
j! J)
there
"Li
;U-^
iL) i]
tip of
iAjU t* expletive t.
d.*lx L* general t*.
JLjUJ
linguals.
a pro-
^l^
{i.e.
position or phrase
the t
,1
,
as
which hinders
their action
may
on succeeding nouns).
Airli -oJ
grammatically, literally.
noun of
action.
verbs doubly
having an incom-
plete signification.
^ufc-j
5-*/*J
letters.
*i..4-^
;
of
[j>*-^, i.e.
denying a quality
plicated
i.e.
of the subject.
^^,.gj.js:
\
come together.
see p.
^_^aJ t*
denying the
v!Jl5
'iXJij
title,
221
(132).'
clacking.
^J^y
j*i)Jb
''
preterite.
X -o y o'
LLA\
indicating a predomi-
\\\
^^"'
j^,
p^-'i'
U \t^iat ^ion
i"
1
nant quality.
'Li
^c
^^jJiij t*
"belonging to," or
of."
iL^
soft (letters).
"made
395
s>
..M)'.-^
the
of verbs
immediately
-^
'^ 9
ijjw* converted.
5 O^
(^^)
tions.
^^"-^ indeclinable.
tLix-.-,^
explanatory.
j^
*^-^ vague.
<t.,j-^
nouns.
c yc.-^ antecedent of
an appositive.
y y
^\^^ ^^ Aii^
two
(a letter)
with
ajuL::,* obscure.
dots underneath.
ij^^:::-^
attached (pronoun,
i\,ai:L^
etc.).
\^i'' cT?
^
gj ^
dots above.
J Ui ^
Ij
<>
yi
j^t^
^j^,
when they
f-
preserve the
teshd'id.
y9
L-ijS^
^iL
\
dual.
(^^^'*
<^_j'
(^_;^Jj;.^
portion
is
equivalent to
a
a preposition.
' y p
iUW*
compensation.
ijrjljsr*
i^
miration.
iSjc^ transitive.
S^i^^
ft
metaphorical, or
conventional feminine.
S~y 9
^JXx:^* dependent.
<U
.y p \*\s^^ transitive.
is^y y p
^^W*
it.
being
transitive,
act
of
passing
awuy
from.
term dependent on
J^"*
primitive.
SOG
S
9
ij ''
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
S
9
1^
., _sr^
J i^.s'*
if
1
,
sition.
< ^
ts^ j^jS^
tive case.
^jJlj
i:^z
predicated
smuggled,
(vowels
not
between two
I,
.
nouns
;
(state of construction).
-
' o ^
;jsr*
CV'
nounced). s ^ ^>
quies-
C^=^
particularized.
o 'O-o
cent (a letter).
J.^.jsr*
'CJ-'O s-
jjl
complex.
openly pronounced.
J*
"^
_j^
J/J b
ij.ijs'*
S.
9
i^
jj.^^* passive.
S <>.9
JwiJL4.Sl
1^
t-jijlsT*^
losing
its
\ys^ tolerated. S 9 ^
{^
tesM'id.
. .
'^
its tesM'id.
i_J.jk.s'* apocopated.
^oS-o
;l^-'^l
,
y o
y ...
<^
X*
the sign
n
it.
written over an
a vowel
,
the
to lengthen
Jk.
opposite of "quiescent."
9
<^
i*..::^^ restricted.
9
^ ^
i.q.
\:^s.^
^y
^
,
meddah,
q.vl
y S y
At'^
obvious.
>
J^^' (X^'*
\
a proper
name
J-s^i'jL^
Jk-^
meddah preceded by a
coni'
sisting of
',.^
in the
same word.
S
'(^9
not declined.
^oo-o ^
c_jLc^!
\
9^
6^
^9 Sy UH'-^i x*
over an
1
i ^
^^
J^"^
having
397
?o
-"O^
y ^
yc^^W
-'
to.
^^'f
inseparably compounded.
-ii
^jk^ masculine.
a-J jkjj.*
augmented
(verb).
S^
(^
dJi]s^ pronounced
motion of the
(_jJ^'^X
^vith a quick
L_^-.*u^ actuated
by an extraneous
lips or tongue.
"^
)
\
^^^
(_Jjy
O^ CO
y'
^.K^,-*
the cause
which
A^j^ numerical
tens,
jj.isry
progression, units,
and
so on.
= ^_^^-wJ.
per names).
to
;
^.a^y*
<~^^
lawful, allowed.
ic^i:iA./J
'
tlie
/kXi/*.!
I
^L2-;>/J
'
conjoined exception.
iLsrr*
c ji..*
native.
/JJ1
.^
^wWlj
?.i,'
put in the
i^i:^^
proposition.
c--^'^^l
j_jv>l:^l ^.^^iyt
posterior
compound
as ^, ^
ij-, S"
thethingfrora v^hich
\5^>'
exception
is
made.
name
contikji-^x^^n
two nouns
in a state
augmented (noun).
of construction. S i-'^ S ^^ 9
^e^-2J' -r^^7^
^j-*
yi^j-^
k^i^
against
a proper
name
whom
aid
is
sought.
con<0 C_;l.^*u.4>n
is
sisting of
person for
whom
aid
compounded.
demanded.
I
398
2Ss:xm^ depressed
i,
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
<Li^-^^ solid (letters), opposed to S ''y o P
(letters).
(^
^Ciau^ hidden.
^^.^My*
^..s^*^^
common
rhymed
gender.
t!
(
A-^
aorist.
y fC-SP
jLi]l c
^Ld^
relation analogous
prose.
to that of the antecedent of
two
buted.
<lJ1 JkX-^ that to
which an
attri-
bute
i;.l^.u^
is
given.
Iff*
tSS-o
'o-o ^
*>
softened
by the suppression
aorist of
of the hemzeh.
S'- " ^ P
dSXfLy* participation.
"i
^^ p
of
two
Ci;^.^
,-535
derivative.
!>
C\
A;
3 M'* J^
tive, or
S^
nouns in a
tUJl t_"'l.^<
state of construction.
(.
the
complement of
^^
such noun.
as equivalent to one.
l^^Ly% having
p '^y P
<"
teshcl'd.
o ^o-'
..^
j'*^^* containing
.J ^^i. the
pronoun contained in
nouns in a
-=-
state of construction.
L_J .sT
J*AA^
the intermedi-
in irjb.
ate
.-^^
member
^ /
of a proposition.
attached pronominal
c
agent.
,o
/>
^L:>-L2-* concomitance.
5-^
C'
jA^
detached pronominal
^ P
"^-v^ ..^ jJu^ the verbal noun not commencing with >
^^
Sy
S^
-"
L^y^^
-^
mencing with
^lla, corresponding.
Z\ ,s.^2^ the quality of
being a noun
X-Ajlk.* concordance.
of action.
399
'''-'
y 9
c:^^fC^
l:Ua*J^
iji;ll:,
concord-
JU:^
i_c
jk^'ix.*
is
preceded
modified
by the agent
the functions
itself
performing
of an adverbial
.lia-^
dominant (verb).
having dia-
^.Ik^
i"
submission.
(letters)
declined.
/ ^o
cULia^ arched
^ ^
,
k__jyt,*
determinate, definite.
,)s
and bS^^
9
uVL^
^dla^
\
universal.
absolute, general.
^
determined
by the
.,.
article.
ilk
"whatever the
first
or second radical
di
a determinate noun,
may
Si
9
be."
S-a 9
i.q.
i:S/%>
noun.
i
;^o 9
>^
J::jt^
special noun.
!tj, active.
<-^
weak
(verb).
j.^
(_ila."t^
in apposition
word or
*Lia-j^l iiJl
"
i.v.t:x.r,-
pre-
'h.x,^
refers or is ioiued.
^^oo-^!
^^ S
yL,9
JO
^T^-:*^^
^^
wW;>.t,
preceded by
it
jt.,*
active voice
serves
^ ^
complement
governed.
of the at-
jX;
4>.4::j-*
preceded by
qualified
JsxiJ
J^'*>*'
is
by
ment
^ o ^
of a verb.
^:j- logical,
^s.
i^^':.x,t
preceded by
J^,x^n previously mentioned.
cLJU. superiority. S ^ 91^^ 'ks>-y'>^ having the vowel
400
i'l:>-li^
ARABIC GRA^JilAE,
suddenness
^^
s
I
-^
cji^t singular.
general complement.
^ Jjxi^
yjJu* explained.
^-Ic (_>.is^i the inferior of two
'^
complement of a verb
expressingtimeorplace of action.
terms of comparison.
(jyts^ passive participle, patient,
objective comi^lement.
^^^
(iT^
L,y
U3 ^
who
1
participates in an
l::..^*:,^
several complements.
action, as
which
^(^s^ shortened.
Ji'* resrular.
S~y
JxliJl |*U^
^UJl
J..d^^ the
L^
plural
^^'^ J_j*iJl
the
,c-x^ metonym.
S yy
y 9
object of an action of
which the
jja*-:d,*
^ f
subject S^O 9 i?
iJ^-'-*
i.e.
is
C
not expressed.
-'
J_^-
ambiguous, identical.
verbially, as
<^:'
in
b^
Jj^
the
patient or passive
J^yU
p. 45.
c:;liLs^ adopted;
the
participle,
the complement or
object of a verb.
fv**
(jy^^
L_5J^
c^:.^,
possession.
complement.
jK/^v^
''^
Jv^*
the fictitious
perfectly declined
complement.
J-^*
J.-.^
<i.j
specifying.
specified,
f'^j^j^ Jj*^*
fictitious patient.
U^/t specificative.
401
S^ CO y
-a
<^A-
(^j's:*Jl
l/lj 1
-9
jXX^
indefinite.
'^^
-^
"
/^*
S^
9
implied.
'
'(4).(3)f(2)V).
O^
*? >'
<Ui.giv t<
depressed letter.
of.
^^ ^
--
aflirmative.
OP (a letter).
^c
variable.
s-
y o.
Cj^^^i:.^
' '*^T*
j__c^
<l"alified, i.q.
ClJyc^^
tive
case,
the
subjunctive
u_j^-tfj^
grammatically
adjective.
mood.
^
y ^ oo
^
o -'
qualified
by an
JsS'*^
c_>>yai^
virtually in
the
o^:-^*
accusative.
by an
virtually in the ac-
\s^ <-_;^:^
cusative.
uT^y
conjunctive noun.
L5^' Jj^^'*
]
conjunctive noun,
in the
jj^l
I*
^aJJ
i^y^
^-?^^i^
)
adver-
S^ ^
Ltflri.
or blame.
c:j^*i.^ qualified
tives,
S-' y
>^
^^
^
g-.y.
pi^^
by an
adjective.
mon)
J
P
conjunctives.
^
o^
#
y_<^
^J^aii^ detached.
^kii:^* separated.
'ry^y
^
to
oX
i>^2^1^,-^M
y^J
^^-^y* em-
26
402
L.i2r>-
AEABIC GRAMMAE.
-^
J jj
^Y*
employed
speedy
\j
to
subjunctive mood.
uJU
\
denying, of negation.
defective.
of.
Ij>-
j^sL-
y iXJ
yy% cmployed
j_^U
to express the
speedy occurrence
t_^U
occupying
the place
hoped
S<i
for.
i^'^y* corroborated.
u'
\^<::.Z^^
-
of the agent.
S^/y* corroborative.
:sr
*
grammar, syntax.
''Y*
feminine.
Ju vocative case.
^Jl^^
pronoun.
^L^
*"
r^ LL^^y* conventional
or fictitious feminine.
same relation
the
e-s:***^
or Arabic
hand
nine.
Ci
which the
9
iYa?/c
feminine.
S^
O 9
g^^
diacritical
w X
<LL>f^
having no dots or
points.
<s_L*^*
j_^j
application.
having no dots or
?'"'''
diacritical
4_-v^ accusative
J^-xk)
or objective case.
points.
^ ^
letters
formed by pressing
IL* hundreds.
^. u>:?
measure.
^A-x-
t::..-s*j
a real epithet.
D
U
abbreviation
for
9^'-a
\
o^
Ur>^i
he
Jj^o^
^,-jtJl
^/**a5
the
first
person,
informed us."
J-C::^! jj*aJ
the
first
jJu
rare.
person plural.
403
J^
in
or i-_c-J
all
^j
absolute negation of
and
negation synon^JM.J
ju*J
itf^*^ L5*J
s abbreviation for
i.'-\ij
name
of
J l^
J Uii^
silent ^a.
fjjij
conversion
removing a vowel
<-_iijJl
^U
the
M in pause.
orthography.
which precedes
$
it.
5"
o o^
& o ^ o-o ^
o ''
*^*^^"
sLs.-^ spelling,
-?.'<- -'
^-.^ ^
i<
'
f'^rr^**
^^
t-ry
tJ^
so ^
J'*^
writing such sign.
the
hemzefi
noun.
'i.Cj
indeterminate noun.
^j) iy^
O XC-.0 ?^o X
used
in
JO-'
^eiJ prohibition.
^^y
\
see pp. 9
o xc-*o y ^ o ^
Sx:j
f^^^'j
which
desin-
^J^^Jb
in
mumbling (compressing
lips in mastication).
iy
species.
added
|Jcj|i
o-o
,'j
initiative
J.
JU^J
^y
the
which
dis
t:'*'^
tinguishcs the af' ' fixed pronoun of the ] JTI" \T ^ accusative or first person used with verbs from the afiixed pronoun of the same person used with nouns.
or
>
itance.
H^y U^
'
when
404
CXH -<3
ARABIC GRAMilAP^
7,^
,
Jt
S^] j\^
the conjunction
_j
in
jcLsl
? O y <_jLtf^
a natural adjective or
such expressions as
qualifying teim.
<Ll<jj^
implying
simultaneous
action^
axiom.
-^
Jlo-Ui^wTj^j,
of concomitance,
,
.Jt-ii
external.
<_^ jlj
see p. 198.
UJj
in accordance
j^Jj
measure of a word.
^srLiJ
^Lij
the
homologue
of
feihah,
i.e. a?//".
^JxaJ^
verb.
uji-tf.
uJj
the
^^ measure of the
4__cjj period, full stop,
pause.
quality
of
being
an
^tfi^
,
adjectiye.
INDEX.
A.
Abstract noun, 147.
Alphabet,
C1 279.
1.
Adjectives, gender
,.,l^c:jl.r^l 242.
of,
207.
y ^ use
250.
Admiration, 277.
Adverbs, 166, 233.
Antecedent, 256.
Aorist, 27, 171, 178.
,,
compound, 284.
verbs used
as,
of defective verbs
(final
193.
J ),
78.
80
Adverbial expressions,
193.
19),
192,
of hollow verbs
'^~^\ 275.
Agent, 46, 178, 183, 225.
,,
broken plurals
132, 133.
of,
(medial
\),
74.
,,
intensive, 52.
,,
position
of,
263.
Apposition, 267.
,,
^^
J.r.3]
J
275.
128,
274.
simple, 268, 271.
,,
^! 278.
changes of
vowels,
etc.,
of
verb with
Affixed pronouns,
of description, 268.
406
AKABIC GRAMMAR.
employed
in
Caliph, story of
a,
forming, 272.
,,
of vocatives, 277.
288.
189,
Arab
tribes,
names
of,
182, 184.
157, 256.
,,
use
of,
Chronograms,
,,
5.
mS 88.
'
Moorish, 5.
1.^-x 375
,
,
tives, 139.
B.
Colour,
noun
of,
128.
16,
,,
of), 108.
Common
gender, 96.
of,
of), 109.
Comparative, plural
128.
Compound
expressions, 284.
anomalous forms
note
;
of,
130, 137.
135, note;
of,
and apodosis
of,
,, ,,
declension
102.
262.
Conjunctions, 166, 256, 257, 258.
forms
of.
111.
,,
of feminine nouns,
feminine
plurals
used
D.
Dates, 217, 218, 219.
with, 208.
,,
gender
of,
111.
,,
134-138
ancient, 6, 98.
,,
tables
of,
113,
of,
of nouns with
weak
final
general table
139.
radical, 99.
INDEX.
Defective verbs, 74, 76.
407
tenses
of,
77.
E
Feet, 292.
Dependent
case, 195.
, ,
normal, 294.
tables of variatio n i n , 3 7,
308,309,310,311,312.
(passive), 44.
J>
variations
of,
93. 93.
Feminine, formation
of,
grammatical, 183.
of hemzated verbs
(initial), 63.
Fractions, 164.
(medial), 64.
(final), 65.
>>
>> it
G.
jr^ 266.
Genders, 91.
32-39.
tenses
of,
39.
,,
common,
96,'
Descriptive, nature
of,
269.
as,
,,
sentence used
269,
270.
E,
lil^
267.
374.
Doubled
verbs,
derived conjuga-
jS^
Doubly imperfect
Dual, 104.
verbs, 84j
^^:^-,
change
of,
gation
is
85.
t3-.^J 374.
Jjb 89.
E.
^js^-
J-4, signification
of,
89.
Hamasah,
Uemzeh,
,,
208.
9.
combination
of,
with other
weak
Hemzet
Remzet
gender
of,
207.
as an, 208.
noun of action
Exception,
how
expressed, 265.
before, 85.
408
Hemzated verbs
,,
,,
ARABIC GEAMMAE.
62.
(initial),
i^'
and
in
(medial), 63.
(final), 65.
of,
these
particles
and
252
their compounds,
ex-
tenses
of,
71.
Cl\
cL-ii
*
374.
266.
particles, 379.
Interjections, 167.
jAi:M
Ji^y^\
Imaleh,
*Lc 291.
J^
9,
291.
197, note.
of derived conjugations, 41
" Is,"
^\
how
expressed, 288.
of defective verbs
(final ^), 80, 84.
(final
153.
^),
80, 84.
J.
,,
of hollow verbs
Jezmeli or sulcun, 10.
(medial^), 72.
Jussive, 176.
(medial
\),
72.
K.
Kitab es Sadih
wa
'Baghim, 341.
nouns used
as,
231, 232,
233.
iX ^
.
267.
,^
374.
Imru
'al
Kais,
poem of,
quoted, 204
275.
*
1
249, 289.
289.
275.
^
1j\
j>
l^ll^
285.
INDEX.
409
circle,
Koran,
ii.
126, p. 177;
ii.
30,
Metres, 4th
299.
5th
300. 296,
314, 315,
169;
;
173
184, 185
XXX.
xxxvii. 147
^\i^\
316, 317.
202;
cii.
6-8, p. 177.
Jo J.2i 296,318,319,320,
321.
L.
L.uJ[
325.
279, 289.
C^-jS 267.
Letters, correspondence
with the
j^l\
329.
JU'wtM298,330,331,332,
333.
i-JJ^^i 300,
356, 357.
354, 355,
same
root, 19.
,,
numeral value
written,
of, 3.
,,
but
not
pro-
'p!^\
c^Li2i
nounced, 15.
352, 353.
300, 358, 359. 300, 360, 36 J.
^
\j^'.
^
M.
^'lC^\
ijL..c^^\
364, 365
l^Jf
"^337.
253, 254.
'^y^
341.
J^^
374.
344,
345.
Metonyms, 285.
Metre, 291.
Metres, the, 313.
t^^-^^
299,
340,
347,
348, 319.
,,
iLi/Z\
369.
2nd
3rd
297.
298.
410
Moods
,,
ARABIC GRAMMAR.
of verbs, 171, 173.
Noun
of excess, 52.
of instrument, 50.
apocopated, 173.
of defective verb
(final j), 78.
(final
of relation, 144.
of quality, 51.
^),
81.
energetic, 176.
'
,,
of species, 46.
ofsuperiority,51, 226,227.
,,
imperative, 177
indicative, 171.
of superiority, pi.
of time
of,
128.
91.
subjunctive, 171.
and
place, 48.
of unity, 46.
of,
Nouns, cases
177.
K,
C '"' ^jjd 275.
Karnes of Arab
182, 184.
tribes,
202,203,206,207,215,
216, 287.
gender
of,
206.
Negation, 253.
,,
Noun,
tbe, 89.
abstract, 147.
191.
of action, 31.
,
Nouns
jugations, 42.
,, ,,
declension
of,
97, 140.
.,,
in wkm, 47.
140-144
indeclinable, 103.
223, 224.
,,
defining or determining,
Noun, Agent
,,
46.
287.
definite
and
indefinite,
201, 288.
,,'
208.
of,
diminutive, 148.
,,
genders
91.
INDEX.
Nouns, numbers
411
of,
103.
>
ft
263, 264.
plurals
of,
122.
wbich govern
223.
like verbs,
Pain, form of
word
signifying, 90.
Number, 103.
Numbers, approximate, 164.
279.
Numerals,
cardinal, 158.
ordinal, 161, 216.
6,
employed
sition,
in
formingappo-
272.
initiative, 279.
212.
adjectival, 163.
)}
>)
n
j>
adverbial, 163.
compound, 284.
distributive, 163.
which
248.
resemble
verbs,
fractions, 164.
multiplicative, 163.
recurring, 164.
ft
gender
of,
213, 214.
186.
184, 185,
agreement in gender of
numeral
and
thin?
Pause, the, 14.
numbered, 213.
if
different
pi.
to
express
JVun, assimilation
of,
in
certain
>)
of,
words, 15.
^b^l^jj
151.
ft )'
0.
Objective case, 188, 189, 190, 191,
102, 193, 199, 288, 289.
diminutives
of,
160.
412
AEABIC GEAMMAE.
Pronouns referring to tbe antecedent in relative sentences, 256, 260.
,,
of,
(feminine), 108.
irregular, 139.
Poem, parts
292.
of,
292.
omission
of,
260.
structure
constituent 221.
portions
of,
declension
of,
101.
of,
Proposition, arrangement
263.
Prosody, 261.
,,
omission
of,
239.
nomenclature
293.
of,
291,292,
198, 233.
,,
nouns used
omission
of,
as,
197.
187.
Q.
Quadriliteral verbs, 44.
Quadriliterals,
of defective verb
(final j), 77, 82. (final
plurals
of,
112,
127.
Qualificatives, 256.
^),
80.
of derived
39.
>}
conjugations,
Quantity, 293.
,,
anomalies
in,
293.
of,
of
Hollow verbs
(medial ,^), 72.
QuinqueHterals, plurals
112.
(medial (medial
Probibitive, 174.
\),
73. 71.
E.
Regular Plural, 106.
Eelatives, 256, 257, 258.
:
.),
Pronouns, 151.
,,
nature
of,
259.
,,
demonstrative, 154.
affixed, 151.
Pronouns, 156.
sentences, 256.
the, 373, 374, 375.
of,
expressing
tive, 151.
the
nomina-
,,
Rhyme,
j>
Roots, nature
,,
19.
Personal, 151.
Pelative, 156.
separate, 151.
iljj
u^iJj 374.
153.
Cs^j 373, 374.>
government
of,
INDEX.
T.
413
S-
s ^^
293.
Scansion, 301.
Self, selves, etc.,
i^^^\j 374.
Tables of correspondence of forms
how
expressed,
,,
274, 275.
Semivowels,
8.
,,
analysis
of,
287, 288.
,,
Hemzated
verb, 66.
>>
nominal, 234.
relative, 256.
imperative, 174.
prohibitive, 174.
verbal, 234.
'^-^\
>>
i^
111.
of
,,
Temvin,
as
the
complements
Teshd'ul, 11.
_j..2J'
prepositions, 198.
317. 374.
l^y
names
of,
182, 184.
Triliteral
nouns,
of,
broken plurals
of a passive verb,
178,
114.
omission
of,
241.
V.
Verbal noun, 25.
Verbal nouns, plurals
of.
concordance
235, 239.
of,
122.
>>
inversion of,240.
agent of
a,
178, 179.
of,
words
affecting,
241.
180,181,182,183,265.
,,
,,
of,
237.
128.
i^y^ 266.
Syntax, summary
of,
in apposition with
an agent and
287.
article,
257.
tLa
374.
omission
of,
189, 190.
4U
Yerb, omission
of,
AEABIC GRAMMAR.
in ejaculatory
Verbs parts
of,
25.
Passive, 178,184,185,186.
object
of,
179, 188.
to,
passive
of,
186, 187.
of,
>>
>>
words cognate
231.
six classes
30.
Tenses
of,
26, 169.
154.
f>
292.
approximate, 244.
assimilated, 58, 66.
parts
of,
291.
>>
apocopation
of
the
last
>>
apposition
6.
of,
277,
Vowels,
>>
>>
nasal, 6.
30.
governing by means of a
preposition, 186, 187.
with
the
as signs of inflexion, 9.
W.
Words
indeclinable, 279, 283.
having two
objects, 188.
Hemzated, 58.
Hollow, 69.
Indeclinable, 88.
Juj 295.
*
>>
(initialj), 67.
(initial
J
<". -'
^),
of,
68.
i f jU-jJl 302.
>>
Irregular, 58.
Moods
>>
27, 171.
J/1^1 ujUJJl
^,j-K*:\
302.
304.
ujUJJl
THE END,
0A|
Tl
REC^
IB URL
jm
JUl
VV
000
6693204
SANSCRIT
GRAMMAR
>'^:>"^'^%.'^fcf